The Spoilers
The Spoilers
The Spoilers
This ebook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this ebook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States,
you will have to check the laws of the country where you are located
before using this eBook.
Language: English
Credits: Produced by Charles Franks and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team
THE SPOILERS
By REX BEACH
Author of "THE AUCTION BLOCK" "RAINBOW'S END" "THE IRON TRAIL" Etc.
Illustrated
THIS BOOK
IS LOVINGLY DEDICATED TO
MY MOTHER
CONTENTS
CHAPTER
I. THE ENCOUNTER
XII. COUNTERPLOTS
XV. VIGILANTES
XIX. DYNAMITE
XX. IN WHICH THREE GO TO THE SIGN OF THE SLED AND BUT TWO RETURN
CHAPTER I
THE ENCOUNTER
Glenister gazed out over the harbor, agleam with the lights of anchored
ships, then up at the crenelated mountains, black against the sky. He
drank the cool air burdened with its taints of the sea, while the blood
of his boyhood leaped within him.
"Careful you don't bust," warned Dextry. "I've seen men get plumb drunk
on mountain air. Don't expand too strong in one spot." He went back
abruptly to his pipe, its villanous fumes promptly averting any danger
of the air's too tonic quality.
"I'd ruther smell like a man than talk like a kid. You desecrate the
hour of meditation with rhapsodies on nature when your aesthetics ain't
honed up to the beauties of good tobacco."
The other laughed, inflating his deep chest. In the gloom he stretched
his muscles restlessly, as though an excess of vigor filled him.
They were lounging upon the dock, while before them lay the Santa Maria
ready for her midnight sailing. Behind slept Unalaska, quaint, antique,
and Russian, rusting amid the fogs of Bering Sea. Where, a week before,
mild-eyed natives had dried their cod among the old bronze cannon, now
a frenzied horde of gold-seekers paused in their rush to the new El
Dorado. They had come like a locust cloud, thousands strong, settling
on the edge of the Smoky Sea, waiting the going of the ice that barred
them from their Golden Fleece--from Nome the new, where men found
fortune in a night.
The mossy hills back of the village were ridged with graves of those
who had died on the out-trip the fall before, when a plague had gripped
the land--but what of that? Gold glittered in the sands, so said the
survivors; therefore men came in armies. Glenister and Dextry had left
Nome the autumn previous, the young man raving with fever. Now they
returned to their own land.
"This air whets every animal instinct in me," Glenister broke out
again. "Away from the cities I turn savage. I feel the old primitive
passions--the fret for fighting."
"How so?"
"Well, it's this way. I met Mexico Mullins this mornin'. You mind old
Mexico, don't you? The feller that relocated Discovery Claim on Anvil
Creek last summer?"
"You don't mean that 'tin-horn' the boys were going to lynch for
claim-jumping?"
"Identical! Remember me tellin' you about a good turn I done him once
down Guadalupe way?"
"Yep! Well, I noticed first off that he's gettin fat; high-livin' fat,
too, all in one spot, like he was playin' both ends ag'in the centre.
Also he wore di'mon's fit to handle with ice-tongs.
"Says I, lookin' at his side elevation, 'What's accented your middle
syllable so strong, Mexico?'
"'Listen here,' says he, an', seein' he was in earnest, I let him run
on.
"'Hard tellin',' says I. 'If she holds out like she run last fall,
there'd ought to be a million clear in her."
"'Bill,' says he, 'there's hell a-poppin' an' you've got to watch that
ground like you'd watch a rattle-snake. Don't never leave 'em get a
grip on it or you're down an' out.'
"'I can't tell you nothin' more. I'm puttin' a string on my own neck,
sayin' THIS much. You're a square man, Bill, an' I'm a gambler, but you
saved my life oncet, an' I wouldn't steer you wrong. For God's sake,
don't let 'em jump your ground, that's all.'
"'Let who jump it? Congress has give us judges an' courts an'
marshals--' I begins.
"'That's just it. How you goin' to buck that hand? Them's the best
cards in the deck. There's a man comin' by the name of McNamara. Watch
him clost. I can't tell you no more. But don't never let 'em get a grip
on your ground.' That's all he'd say."
"Bah! He's crazy! I wish somebody would try to jump the Midas; we'd
enjoy the exercise."
The siren of the Santa Maria interrupted, its hoarse warning throbbing
up the mountain.
At first the only sound they heard was a stir from the deck of the
steamer. Then from the water below them came the rattle of rowlocks and
a voice cautiously muffled.
He turned to his partner in puzzled inquiry, but found that the old man
had crossed to the head of the landing ladder up which the pursuers
were climbing.
"Just a minute--you there! Back up or I'll kick your face in." Dextry's
voice was sharp and unexpected, and in the darkness he loomed tall and
menacing to those below.
"Get out of the way. That woman's a runaway," came from the one highest
on the ladder.
"So I jedge."
"Shut up!" broke in another. "Do you want to advertise it? Get out of
the way, there, ye damn fool! Climb up, Thorsen." He spoke like a bucko
mate, and his words stirred the bile of Dextry.
Thorsen grasped the dock floor, trying to climb up, but the old miner
stamped on his fingers and the sailor loosened his hold with a yell,
carrying the under men with him to the beach in his fall.
"This way! Follow me!" shouted the mate, making up the bank for the
shore end of the wharf.
"Yes, yes! Let us go! I must get aboard the Santa Maria. She's leaving
now. Come, come!"
"I'm gettin' awful old an' stiff to run," said Dextry, removing his
mackinaw, "but I allow I ain't too old for a little diversion in the
way of a rough-house when it comes nosin' around." He moved lightly,
though the girl could see in the half-darkness that his hair was
silvery.
"You hurry along, miss; we'll toy with 'em till you're aboard." They
stepped across to the dockhouse, backing against it. The girl followed.
Again came the warning blast from the steamer, and the voice of an
officer:
"Oh, we'll be left!" she breathed, and somehow it struck Glenister that
she feared this more than the men whose approaching feet he heard.
"YOU can make it all right," he urged her, roughly. "You'll get hurt if
you stay here. Run along and don't mind us. We've been thirty days on
shipboard, and were praying for something to happen." His voice was
boyishly glad, as if he exulted in the fray that was to come; and no
sooner had he spoken than the sailors came out of the darkness upon
them.
Glenister, on the other hand, stood carelessly, beating the men off as
they came to him. He laughed gloatingly, deep in his throat, as though
the encounter were merely some rough sport. The girl shuddered, for the
desperate silence of the attacking men terrified her more than a din,
and yet she stayed, crouched against the wall.
Dextry swung at a dim target, and, missing it, was whirled off his
balance. Instantly his antagonist grappled with him, and they fell to
the floor, while a third man shuffled about them. The girl throttled a
scream.
"I'm goin' to kick 'im, Bill," the man panted hoarsely. "Le' me fix
'im." He swung his heavy shoe, and Bill cursed with stirring eloquence.
"Ow! You're kickin' me! I've got 'im, safe enough. Tackle the big un."
Bill's ally then started towards the others, his body bent, his arms
flexed yet hanging loosely. He crouched beside the girl, ignoring her,
while she heard the breath wheezing from his lungs; then silently he
leaped. Glenister had hurled a man from him, then stepped back to avoid
the others, when he was seized from behind and felt the man's arms
wrapped about his neck, the sailor's legs locked about his thighs. Now
came the girl's first knowledge of real fighting. The two spun back and
forth so closely entwined as to be indistinguishable, the others
holding off. For what seemed many minutes they struggled, the young man
striving to reach his adversary, till they crashed against the wall
near her and she heard her champion's breath coughing in his throat at
the tightening grip of the sailor. Fright held her paralyzed, for she
had never seen men thus. A moment and Glenister would be down beneath
their stamping feet--they would kick his life out with their heavy
shoes. At thought of it, the necessity of action smote her like a blow
in the face. Her terror fell away, her shaking muscles stiffened, and
before realizing what she did she had acted.
The seaman's back was to her. She reached out and gripped him by the
hair, while her fingers, tense as talons, sought his eyes. Then the
first loud sound of the battle arose. The man yelled in sudden terror;
and the others as suddenly fell back. The next instant she felt a hand
upon her shoulder and heard Dextry's voice.
"Are ye hurt? No? Come on, then, or we'll get left." He spoke quietly,
though his breath was loud, and, glancing down, she saw the huddled
form of the sailor whom he had fought.
"That's all right--he ain't hurt. It's a Jap trick I learned. Hurry up!"
They ran swiftly down the wharf, followed by Glenister and by the
groans of the sailors in whom the lust for combat had been quenched. As
they scrambled up the Santa Maria's gang-plank, a strip of water
widened between the boat and the pier.
"What kind of men are you?" the girl laughed nervously, but got no
answer.
They led her to their deck cabin, where they switched on the electric
light, blinking at each other and at their unknown guest.
Glenister had been prepared for the type of beauty that follows the
frontier; beauty that may stun, but that has the polish and chill of a
new-ground bowie. Instead, this girl with the calm, reposeful face
struck a note almost painfully different from her surroundings,
suggesting countless pleasant things that had been strange to him for
the past few years.
"I make oration," said he, "that you're the gamest little chap I ever
fought over, Mexikin, Injun, or white. What's the trouble?"
"I suppose you think I've done something dreadful, don't you?" she
said. "But I haven't. I had to get away from the Ohio to-night
for--certain reasons. I'll tell you all about it to-morrow. I haven't
stolen anything, nor poisoned the crew--really I haven't." She smiled
at them, and Glenister found it impossible not to smile with her,
though dismayed by her feeble explanation.
"Well, I'll wake up the steward and find a place for you to go," he
said at length. "You'll have to double up with some of the women,
though; it's awfully crowded aboard."
She laid a detaining hand on his arm. He thought he felt her tremble.
"No, no! I don't want you to do that. They mustn't see me to-night. I
know I'm acting strangely and all that, but it's happened so quickly I
haven't found myself yet. I'll tell you to-morrow, though, really.
Don't let any one see me or it will spoil everything. Wait till
to-morrow, please."
"Help you? Why, sure Mike!" assured the impulsive Dextry, "an', see
here, Miss--you take your time on explanations. We don't care a cuss
what you done. Morals ain't our long suit, 'cause 'there's never a law
of God or man runs north of Fifty-three,' as the poetry man remarked,
an' he couldn't have spoke truer if he'd knowed what he was sayin'.
Everybody is privileged to 'look out' his own game up here. A square
deal an' no questions asked."
She looked somewhat doubtful at this till she caught the heat of
Glenister's gaze. Some boldness of his look brought home to her the
actual situation, and a stain rose in her cheek. She noted him more
carefully; noted his heavy shoulders and ease of bearing, an ease and
looseness begotten of perfect muscular control. Strength was equally
suggested in his face, she thought, for he carried a marked young
countenance, with thrusting chin, aggressive thatching brows, and
mobile mouth that whispered all the changes from strength to abandon.
Prominent was a look of reckless energy. She considered him handsome in
a heavy, virile, perhaps too purely physical fashion.
"I've had a right smart experience in that line," said Dextry, "but I
never done it by proxy. What's your plan?"
"She will stay here to-night," said Glenister quickly. "You and I will
go below. Nobody will see her."
"I can't let you do that," she objected. "Isn't there some place where
I can hide?" But they reassured her and left.
When they had gone, she crouched trembling upon her seat for a long
time, gazing fixedly before her. "I'm afraid!" she whispered; "I'm
afraid. What am I getting into? Why do men look so at me? I'm
frightened. Oh, I'm sorry I undertook it." At last she rose wearily.
The close cabin oppressed her; she felt the need of fresh air. So,
turning out the lights, she stepped forth into the night. Figures
loomed near the rail and she slipped astern, screening herself behind a
life-boat, where the cool breeze fanned her face.
"No, no," said the old man. "She ain't that kind--she's too fine, too
delicate--too pretty."
"That's just it--too pretty! Too pretty to be alone--or anything except
what she is."
Dextry growled sourly. "This country has plumb ruined you, boy. You
think they're all alike--an' I don't know but they are--all but this
girl. Seems like she's different, somehow--but I can't tell."
"I had an ancestor who buccaneered among the Indies, a long time
ago--so I'm told. Sometimes I think I have his disposition. He comes
and whispers things to me in the night. Oh, he was a devil, and I've
got his blood in me--untamed and hot--I can hear him saying something
now--something about the spoils of war. Ha, ha! Maybe he's right. I
fought for her to-night--Dex--the way he used to fight for his
sweethearts along the Mexicos. She's too beautiful to be good--and
'there's never a law of God or man runs north of Fifty-three.'"
They moved on, his vibrant, cynical laughter stabbing the girl till she
leaned against the yawl for support.
She held herself together while the blood beat thickly in her ears,
then fled to the cabin, hurling herself into her berth, where she
writhed silently, beating the pillow with hands into which her nails
had bitten, staring the while into the darkness with dry and aching
eyes.
CHAPTER II
THE STOWAWAY
She awoke to the throb of the engines, and, gazing cautiously through
her stateroom window, saw a glassy, level sea, with the sun brightly
agleam on it.
So this was Bering? She had clothed it always with the mystery of her
school-days, thinking of it as a weeping, fog-bound stretch of gray
waters. Instead, she saw a flat, sunlit main, with occasional
sea-parrots flapping their fat bodies out of the ship's course. A
glistening head popped up from the waters abreast, and she heard the
cry of "seal!"
Dressing, the girl noted minutely the personal articles scattered about
the cabin, striving to derive therefrom some fresh hint of the
characteristics of the owners. First, there was an elaborate,
copper-backed toilet-set, all richly ornamented and leather-bound. The
metal was magnificently hand-worked and bore Glenister's initial. It
spoke of elegant extravagance, and seemed oddly out of place in an
Arctic miner's equipment, as did also a small set of De Maupassant.
Next, she picked up Kipling's Seven Seas, marked liberally, and felt
that she had struck a scent. The roughness and brutality of the poems
had always chilled her, though she had felt vaguely their splendid
pulse and swing. This was the girl's first venture from a sheltered
life. She had not rubbed elbows with the world enough to find that
Truth may be rough, unshaven, and garbed in homespun. The book
confirmed her analysis of the junior partner.
Pendent from a hook was a worn and blackened holster from which peeped
the butt of a large Colt's revolver, showing evidence of many years'
service. It spoke mutely of the white-haired Dextry, who, before her
inspection was over, knocked at the door, and, when she admitted him,
addressed her cautiously:
"Very well, thank you," she lied, "but I've been thinking that I ought
to explain myself to you."
"Now, see here," the old man interjected, "there ain't no explanations
needed till you feel like givin' them up. You was in trouble--that's
unfortunate; we help you--that's natural; no questions asked--that's
Alaska."
"What bothers me," the other continued irrelevantly, "is how in blazes
we're goin' to keep you hid. The steward's got to make up this room,
and somebody's bound to see us packin' grub in."
"I don't care who knows if they won't send me back. They wouldn't do
that, would they?" She hung anxiously on his words.
"Send you back? Why, don't you savvy that this boat is bound for Nome?
There ain't no turnin' back on gold stampedes, and this is the wildest
rush the world ever saw. The captain wouldn't turn back--he
couldn't--his cargo's too precious and the company pays five thousand a
day for this ship. No, we ain't puttin' back to unload no stowaways at
five thousand per. Besides, we passengers wouldn't let him--time's too
precious." They were interrupted by the rattle of dishes outside, and
Dextry was about to open the door when his hand wavered uncertainly
above the knob, for he heard the hearty greeting of the ship's captain.
"Don't wonder! Why weren't you aboard sooner last night? I saw
you--'most got left, eh? Served you right if you had." Then his voice
dropped to the confidential: "I'd advise you to cut out those women.
Don't misunderstand me, boy, but they're a bad lot on this boat. I saw
you come aboard. Take my word for it--they're a bad lot. Cut 'em out.
Guess I'll step inside and see what's up with Dextry."
The girl shrank into her corner, gazing apprehensively at the other
listener.
There was nothing to be done. The old miner darted an inquiring glance
at his companion, then, at her nod, slipped the bolt, and the captain's
blue bulk filled the room.
"Ah," he said, "not feeling well, eh? I thought I had met all of our
lady passengers. Introduce me, Dextry."
"What?"
"Oh, there ain't much to say. This is the lady--we brought aboard last
night--that's all."
"There wasn't TIME, eh? Which one of you conceived the novel scheme of
stowing away ladies in your cabin? Whose is she? Quick! Answer me."
Indignation was vibrant in his voice.
"Oh!" the girl cried--her eyes widening darkly. She stood slim and pale
and slightly trembling.
His words had cut her bitterly, though through it all he had
scrupulously avoided addressing her.
The captain turned to Glenister, who had entered and closed the door.
"Better hear details, captain, before you make breaks like that. We
helped the lady side-step some sailors last night and we most got left
doing it. It was up to her to make a quick get-away, so we helped her
aboard."
"A poor story! What was she running away from?" He still addressed the
men, ignoring her completely, till, with hoarse voice, she broke in:
"You mustn't talk about me that way--I can answer your questions. It's
true--I ran away. I had to. The sailors came after me and fought with
these men. I had to get away quickly, and your friends helped me on
here from gentlemanly kindness, because they saw me unprotected. They
are still protecting me. I can't explain how important it is for me to
reach Nome on the first boat, because it isn't my secret. It was
important enough to make me leave my uncle at Seattle at an hour's
notice when we found there was no one else who could go. That's all I
can say. I took my maid with me, but the sailors caught her just as she
was following me down the ship's ladder. She had my bag of clothes when
they seized her. I cast off the rope and rowed ashore as fast as I
could, but they lowered another boat and followed me."
The captain eyed her sharply, and his grim lines softened a bit, for
she was clean-cut and womanly, and utterly out of place, He took her
in, shrewdly, detail by detail, then spoke directly to her:
"My dear young lady--the other ships will get there just as quickly as
ours, maybe more quickly. To-morrow we strike the ice-pack and then it
is all a matter of luck."
"What's that? What ship? Which one did you come from? Answer me."
"The Ohio," she replied, with the effect of a hand-grenade. The master
glared at her.
"The Ohio! Good God! You DARE to stand there and tell me that?" He
turned and poured his rage upon the others.
"She says the Ohio, d'ye hear? You've ruined me! I'll put you in
irons--all of you. The Ohio!"
"What's up? There's small-pox aboard the Ohio! This girl has broken
quarantine. The health inspectors bottled up the boat at six o'clock
last night! That's why I pulled out of Unalaska ahead of time, to avoid
any possible delay. Now we'll all be held up when we get to Nome. Great
Heavens! do you realize what this means--bringing this hussy aboard?"
His eyes burned and his voice shook, while the two partners stared at
each other in dismay. Too well they knew the result of a small-pox
panic aboard this crowded troop-ship. Not only was every available
cabin bulging with passengers, but the lower decks were jammed with
both humanity and live stock all in the most unsanitary conditions. The
craft, built for three hundred passengers, was carrying triple her
capacity; men and women were stowed away like cattle. Order and a
half-tolerable condition were maintained only by the efforts of the
passengers themselves, who held to the thought that imprisonment and
inconvenience would last but a few days longer. They had been aboard
three weeks and every heart was aflame with the desire to reach
Nome--to reach it ahead of the pressing horde behind.
The fear of the sickness was nothing to Dextry and Glenister, but of
their mine they thought with terror. What would happen in their
absence, where conditions were as unsettled as in this new land; where
titles were held only by physical possession of the premises? During
the long winter of their absence, ice had held their treasure
inviolate, but with the warming summer the jewel they had fought for so
wearily would lie naked and exposed to the first comer. The Midas lay
in the valley of the richest creek, where men had schemed and fought
and slain for the right to inches. It was the fruit of cheerless,
barren years of toil, and if they could not guard it--they knew the
result.
"Don't blame these men, sir," she begged the captain. "I am the only
one at fault. Oh! I HAD to get away. I have papers here that must be
delivered quickly." She laid a hand upon her bosom. "They couldn't be
trusted to the unsettled mail service. It's almost life and death. And
I assure you there is no need of putting me in quarantine. I haven't
the smallpox. I wasn't even exposed to it."
"There's nothing else to do," said Stephens. "I'll isolate you in the
deck smoking-cabin. God knows what these madmen on board will do when
they hear about it, though. They're apt to tear you to shreds. They're
crazy!"
"If you do that, you'll have mutiny in an hour. This isn't the crowd to
stand that sort of thing."
"Bah! Let 'em try it. I'll put 'em down." The officer's square jaws
clicked.
"Maybe so; but what then? We reach Nome and the Health Inspector hears
of small-pox suspects, then we're all quarantined for thirty days;
eight hundred of us. We'll lie at Egg Island all summer while your
company pays five thousand a day for this ship. That's not all. The
firm is liable in damages for your carelessness in letting disease
aboard."
"Yes; that's what it amounts to. You'll ruin your owners, all right.
You'll tie up your ship and lose your job, that's a cinch!"
"My carelessness! Curse you--you say it well. Don't you realize that I
am criminally liable if I don't take every precaution?" He paused for a
moment, considering. "I'll hand her over to the ship's doctor."
"You'll have to look out for the steward," he said, and the girl sank
to a stool while two great tears rolled down her cheeks. The captain's
eyes softened and his voice was gentle as he laid his hand on her head.
"Don't feel hurt over what I said, miss. You see, appearances don't
tell much, hereabouts--most of the pretty ones are no good. They've
fooled me many a time, and I made a mistake. These men will help you
through; I can't. Then when you get to Nome, make your sweetheart marry
you the day you land. You are too far north to be alone."
He stepped out into the passage and closed the door carefully.
CHAPTER III
"We don't get intimate with no nutriments except hog-boosum an' brown
beans, of which luxuries we have unstinted measure, an' bein' as this
is our third year in the country we hanker for bony fido grub,
somethin' scan'lous. Yes, ma'am--three years without a taste of fresh
fruit nor meat nor nuthin'--except pork an' beans. Why, I've et bacon
till my immortal soul has growed a rind.
"When it comes time to close down the claim, the boy is sick with the
fever an' the only ship in port is a Point Barrow whaler, bound for
Seattle. After I book our passage, I find they have nothin' aboard to
eat except canned salmon, it bein' the end of a two years' cruise, so
when I land in the States after seventeen days of a fish diet, I am
what you might call sated with canned grub, and have added salmon to
the list of things concernin' which I am goin' to economize.
"Soon's ever I get the boy into a hospital, I gallop up to the best
restarawnt in town an' prepare for the huge pot-latch. This here, I
determine, is to be a gormandizin' jag which shall live in hist'ry, an'
wharof in later years the natives of Puget Sound shall speak with bated
breath.
"First, I call for five dollars' worth of pork an' beans an' then a
full-grown platter of canned salmon. When the waiter lays 'em out in
front of me, I look them vittles coldly in their disgustin' visages,
an' say in sarcastic accents:
"'Set there, damn you! an' watch me eat REAL grub,' which I proceed to
do, cleanin' the menu from soda to hock. When I have done my worst, I
pile bones an' olive seeds an' peelin's all over them articles of
nourishment, stick toothpicks into 'em, an' havin' offered 'em what
other indignities occur to me, I leave the place."
Dextry and the girl were leaning over the stern-rail, chatting idly in
the darkness. It was the second night out and the ship lay dead in the
ice-pack. All about them was a flat, floe-clogged sea, leprous and
mottled in the deep twilight that midnight brought in this latitude.
They had threaded into the ice-field as long as the light lasted,
following the lanes of blue water till they closed, then drifting idly
till others appeared; worming out into leagues of open sea, again
creeping into the shifting labyrinth till darkness rendered progress
perilous.
Chafing at her imprisonment, the girl had asked the old man to take her
out on deck under the shelter of darkness; then she had led him to
speak of his own past experiences, and of Glenister's; which he had
done freely. She was frankly curious about them, and she wondered at
their apparent lack of interest in her own identity and her secret
mission. She even construed their silence as indifference, not
realizing that these Northmen were offering her the truest evidence of
camaraderie.
It had happened, therefore, that since the men had asked her no
questions, she had allowed the hours to pass and still hesitated to
explain further than she had explained to Captain Stephens. It was much
easier to let things continue as they were; and there was, after all,
so little that she was at liberty to tell them.
In the short time since meeting them, the girl had grown to like
Dextry, with his blunt chivalry and boyish, whimsical philosophy, but
she avoided Glenister, feeling a shrinking, hidden terror of him, ever
since her eavesdropping of the previous night. At the memory of that
scene she grew hot, then cold--hot with anger, icy at the sinister
power and sureness which had vibrated in his voice. What kind of life
was she entering where men spoke of strange women with this assurance
and hinted thus of ownership? That he was handsome and unconscious of
it, she acknowledged, and had she met him in her accustomed circle of
friends, garbed in the conventionalities, she would perhaps have
thought of him as a striking man, vigorous and intelligent; but here he
seemed naturally to take on the attributes of his surroundings,
acquiring a picturesque negligee of dress and morals, and suggesting
rugged, elemental, chilling potentialities. While with him--and he had
sought her repeatedly that day--she was uneasily aware of his strong
personality tugging at her; aware of the unbridled passionate flood of
a nature unbrooking of delay and heedless of denial. This it was that
antagonized her and set her every mental sinew in rigid resistance.
"What portent do you see that makes you stare into the night so
anxiously?" he inquired.
"I am wishing for a sight of the midnight sun or the aurora borealis,"
she replied.
"Too late for one an' too fur south for the other," Dextry interposed.
"We'll see the sun further north, though."
"Have you ever heard the real origin of the Northern Lights?" the young
man inquired.
"Well, here it is. I have it from the lips of a great hunter of the
Tananas. He told it to me when I was sick, once, in his cabin, and
inasmuch as he is a wise Indian and has a reputation for truth, I have
no doubt that it is scrupulously correct.
"In the very old days, before the white man or corned beef had invaded
this land, the greatest tribe in all the North was the Tananas. The
bravest hunter of these was Itika, the second chief. He could follow a
moose till it fell exhausted in the snow and he had many belts made
from the claws of the brown bear which is deadly wicked and, as every
one knows, inhabited by the spirits of 'Yabla-men,' or devils.
"One winter a terrible famine settled over the Tanana Valley. The moose
departed from the gulches and the caribou melted from the hills like
mist. The dogs grew gaunt and howled all night, the babies cried, the
women became hollow-eyed and peevish.
"Then it was that Itika decided to go hunting over the saw-tooth range
which formed the edge of the world. They tried to dissuade him, saying
it was certain death because a pack of monstrous white wolves, taller
than the moose and swifter than the eagle, was known to range these
mountains, running madly in chase. Always, on clear, cold nights, could
be seen the flashing of the moonbeams from their gleaming hungry sides,
and although many hunters had crossed the passes in other years, they
never returned, for the pack slew them.
"With daylight, he proceeded through the range, till he came out above
a magnificent valley. Descending the slope, he entered a forest of
towering spruce, while on all sides the snow was trampled with tracks
as wide as a snow-shoe. There came to him a noise which, as he
proceeded, increased till it filled the woods. It was a frightful din,
as though a thousand wolves were howling with the madness of the kill.
Cautiously creeping nearer, he found a monstrous white animal
struggling beneath a spruce which had fallen upon it in such fashion as
to pinion it securely.
"All brave men are tender-hearted, so Itika set to work with his axe
and cleared away the burden, regardless of the peril to himself. When
he had released it, the beast arose and instead of running away
addressed him in the most polite and polished Indian, without a trace
of accent.
"'I want to hunt in this valley. My people are starving,' said Itika,
at which the wolf was greatly pleased and rounded up the rest of the
pack to help in the kill.
"Always thereafter when Itika came to the valley of the Yukon the giant
drove hunted with him. To this day they run through the mountains on
cold, clear nights, in a multitude, while the light of the moon
flickers from their white sides, flashing up into the sky in weird,
fantastic figures. Some people call it Northern Lights, but old Isaac
assured me earnestly, toothlessly, and with the light of ancient truth,
as I lay snow-blind in his lodge, that it is nothing more remarkable
than the spirit of Itika and the great white wolves."
"What a queer legend!" she said. "There must be many of them in this
country. I feel that I am going to like the North."
"Tell me what led you out here in the first place. You are an Eastern
man. You have had advantages, education--and yet you choose this. You
must love the North."
"The law was considered my destiny. How the shades of old Choate and
Webster and Patrick Henry must have wailed when I forswore it. I'll bet
Blackstone tore his whiskers."
"I think you would have made a success," said the girl, but he laughed.
"Well, anyhow, I stepped out, leaving the way to the United States
Supreme bench unobstructed, and came North. I found it was where I
belonged. I fitted in. I'm not contented--don't think that. I'm
ambitious, but I prefer these surroundings to the others--that's all.
I'm realizing my desires. I've made a fortune--now I'll see what else
the world has."
She started, and glanced towards where Dextry had stood, only to find
that the old frontiersman had slipped away during the tale.
"Then you won't like this country. You are two years too early; you
ought to wait till there are railroads and telephones, and tables
d'hote, and chaperons. It's a man's country yet."
"I don't see why it isn't a woman's country, too. Surely we can take a
part in taming it. Yonder on the Oregon is a complete railroad, which
will be running from the coast to the mines in a few weeks. Another
ship back there has the wire and poles and fixings for a telephone
system, which will go up in a night. As to tables d'hote, I saw a real
French count in Seattle with a monocle. He's bringing in a restaurant
outfit, imported snails, and pate de joies gras. All that's wanting is
the chaperon. In my flight from the Ohio I left mine. The sailors
caught her. You see I am not far ahead of schedule."
"What part are you going to take in this taming process?" he asked.
She paused long before replying, and when she did her answer sounded
like a jest.
"The Colts may go, but the courage never will," she broke in.
"There isn't half the disorder you think there is. There weren't any
crimes in this country till the tenderfeet arrived. We didn't know what
a thief was. If you came to a cabin you walked in without knocking. The
owner filled up the coffee-pot and sliced into the bacon; then when
he'd started your meal, he shook hands and asked your name. It was just
the same whether his cache was full or whether he'd packed his few
pounds of food two hundred miles on his back. That was hospitality to
make your Southern article look pretty small. If there was no one at
home, you ate what you needed. There was but one unpardonable breach of
etiquette--to fail to leave dry kindlings. I'm afraid of the transitory
stage we're coming to--that epoch of chaos between the death of the old
and the birth of the new. Frankly, I like the old way best. I love the
license of it. I love to wrestle with nature; to snatch, and guard, and
fight for what I have. I've been beyond the law for years and I want to
stay there, where life is just what it was intended to be--a survival
of the fittest."
His large hands, as he gripped the bulwark, were tense and corded,
while his rich voice issued softly from his chest with the hint of
power unlimited behind it. He stood over her, tall, virile, and
magnetic. She saw now why he had so joyously hailed the fight of the
previous night; to one of his kind it was as salt air to the nostrils.
Unconsciously she approached him, drawn by the spell of his strength.
He was gazing out upon the dimly lucent miles of ice; but now he turned
towards her, and, doing so, touched her warm hand next his on the rail.
She was staring up at him unaffectedly, so close that the faint odor
from her hair reached him. Her expression was simply one of wonder and
curiosity at this type, so different from any she had known. But the
man's eyes were hot and blinded with the sight of her, and he felt only
her beauty heightened in the dim light, the brush of her garments, and
the small, soft hand beneath his. The thrill from the touch of it
surged over him--mastered him.
It was as though she beat upon a stone. With one movement he forced her
arm to her side, smiling into her terrified eyes; then, holding her
like iron, he kissed her again and again upon the mouth, the eyes, the
hair--and released her.
"And may God strike me dead if I ever stop HATING you!" she cried, her
voice coming thick and hoarse with passion.
CHAPTER IV
THE KILLING
For four days the Santa Maria felt blindly through the white fields,
drifting north with the spring tide that sets through Behring Strait,
till, on the morning of the fifth, open water showed to the east.
Creeping through, she broke out into the last stage of the long race,
amid the cheers of her weary passengers; and the dull jar of her
engines made welcome music to the girl in the deck state-room.
"Thank ye, sir," roared the sailor, and with that the row-boats swarmed
inward pirate-like, boarding the steamer from all quarters.
As the master turned, he looked down from his bridge to the deck below,
full into the face of Dextry, who had been an intent witness of the
meeting. With unbending dignity, Captain Stephens let his left eyelid
droop slowly, while a boyish grin spread widely over his face.
Simultaneously, orders rang sharp and fast from the bridge, the crew
broke into feverish life, the creak of booms and the clank of
donkey-hoists arose.
"We're here, Miss Stowaway," said Glenister, entering the girl's cabin.
"The inspector passed us and it's time for you to see the magic city.
Come, it's a wonderful sight."
This was the first time they had been alone since the scene on the
after-deck, for, besides ignoring Glenister, she had managed that he
should not even see her except in Dextry's presence. Although he had
ever since been courteous and considerate, she felt the leaping
emotions that were hidden within him and longed to leave the ship, to
fly from the spell of his personality. Thoughts of him made her writhe,
and yet when he was near she could not hate him as she willed--he
overpowered her, he would not be hated, he paid no heed to her slights.
This very quality reminded her how willingly and unquestioningly he had
fought off the sailors from the Ohio at a word from her. She knew he
would do so again, and more, and it is hard to be bitter to one who
would lay down his life for you, even though he has
offended--particularly when he has the magnetism that sweeps you away
from your moorings.
"Good evening, Mr. Glenister," the lady said with acid cordiality.
"Don't know yet, I'm sure." Then aside to the girl he muttered, "Shake
her, she's spying on us."
"Her husband manages one of the big companies. She's an old cat."
Gaining her first view of the land, the girl cried out, sharply. They
rode on an oily sea, tinted like burnished copper, while on all sides,
amid the faint rattle and rumble of machinery, scores of ships were
belching cargoes out upon living swarms of scows, tugs, stern-wheelers,
and dories. Here and there Eskimo oomiaks, fat, walrus-hide boats, slid
about like huge, many-legged water-bugs. An endless, ant-like stream of
tenders, piled high with freight, plied to and from the shore. A mile
distant lay the city, stretched like a white ribbon between the gold of
the ocean sand and the dun of the moss-covered tundra. It was like no
other in the world. At first glance it seemed all made of new white
canvas. In a week its population had swelled from three to thirty
thousand. It now wandered in a slender, sinuous line along the coast
for miles, because only the beach afforded dry camping ground. Mounting
to the bank behind, one sank knee-deep in moss and water, and, treading
twice in the same tracks, found a bog of oozing, icy mud. Therefore, as
the town doubled daily in size, it grew endwise like a string of
dominoes, till the shore from Cape Nome to Penny River was a long reach
of white, glinting in the low rays of the arctic sunset like foamy
breakers on a tropic island.
"Let us make haste," said the girl. "I have something I must do
to-night. After that, I can learn to know these things."
Securing a small boat, they were rowed ashores the partners plying
their ferryman with eager questions. Having arrived five days before,
he was exploding with information and volunteered the fruits of his
ripe experience till Dextry stated that they were "sourdoughs"
themselves, and owned the Midas, whereupon Miss Chester marvelled at
the awe which sat upon the man and the wondering stare with which he
devoured the partners, to her own utter exclusion.
The beach they neared was walled and crowded to the high-tide mark with
ramparts of merchandise, while every incoming craft deposited its quota
upon whatever vacant foot was close at hand, till bales, boxes,
boilers, and baggage of all kinds were confusedly intermixed in the
narrow space. Singing longshoremen trundled burdens from the lighters
and piled them on the heap, while yelling, cursing crowds fought over
it all, selecting, sorting, loading.
There was no room for more, yet hourly they added to the mass. Teams
splashed through the lapping surf or stuck in the deep sand between
hillocks of goods. All was noise, profanity, congestion, and feverish
hurry. This burning haste rang in the voice of the multitude, showed in
its violence of gesture and redness of face, permeated the atmosphere
with a magnetic, electrifying energy.
"It's somethin' fierce ashore," said the oarsman. "I been up fer three
days an' nights steady--there ain't no room, nor time, nor darkness to
sleep in. Ham an' eggs is a dollar an' a half, an' whiskey's four bits
a throw." He wailed the last, sadly, as a complaint unspeakable.
"You KNOW it!" the other cried, colloquially. "There was a massacree in
the Northern last night."
"Gamblin' row?"
"Sho!" said Dextry. "I know him. He's a bad actor." All three men
nodded sagely, and the girl wished for further light, but they
volunteered no explanation.
Leaving the skiff, they plunged into turmoil. Dodging through the
tangle, they came out into fenced lots where tents stood wall to wall
and every inch was occupied. Here and there was a vacant spot guarded
jealously by its owner, who gazed sourly upon all men with the
forbidding eye of suspicion. Finding an eddy in the confusion, the men
stopped.
"I can never thank you enough for what you have done--you two; but I
shall try. Good-bye!"
Dextry gazed doubtfully at his own hand, rough and gnarly, then taking
hers as he would have handled a robin's egg, waggled it limply.
"Very well! I wish to find Mr. Struve, of Dunham & Struve, lawyers."
"I'll take you to their offices," said Glenister. "You see to the
baggage, Dex. Meet me at the Second Class in half an hour and we'll run
out to the Midas." They pushed through the tangle of tents, past piles
of lumber, and emerged upon the main thoroughfare, which ran parallel
to the shore.
The roadway where she stood was a crush of sundry vehicles from
bicycles to dog-hauled water-carts, and on all sides men were laboring
busily, the echo of hammers mingling with the cries of teamsters and
the tinkle of music within the saloons.
"Anybody else here besides you?" asked her escort of the lawyer.
"No. I'm runnin' the law business unassisted. Don't need any help.
Dunham's in Wash'n'ton, D. C., the lan' of the home, the free of the
brave. What can I do for you?"
"Isn't that dreadful?" she shuddered. "Oh, and I must see him
to-night!" She stamped impatiently. "I must see him alone."
"No, you mustn't," said Glenister, with equal decision. "In the first
place, he wouldn't know what you were talking about, and in the second
place--I know Struve. He's too drunk to talk business and too sober
to--well, to see you alone."
"But I MUST see him," she insisted. "It's what brought me here. You
don't understand."
Glenister noted that she had not wrung her hands nor even hinted at
tears, though plainly her disappointment and anxiety were consuming her.
"Well, I suppose I'll have to wait, but I don't know where to go--some
hotel, I suppose."
"There aren't any. They're building two, but to-night you couldn't hire
a room in Nome for money. I was about to say 'love or money.' Have you
no other friends here--no women? Then you must let me find a place for
you. I have a friend whose wife will take you in."
She rebelled at this. Was she never to have done with this man's
favors? She thought of returning to the ship, but dismissed that. She
undertook to decline his aid, but he was half-way down the stairs and
paid no attention to her beginning--so she followed him.
It was then that Helen Chester witnessed her first tragedy of the
frontier, and through it came to know better the man whom she disliked
and with whom she had been thrown so fatefully. Already she had
thrilled at the spell of this country, but she had not learned that
strength and license carry blood and violence as corollaries.
Emerging from the doorway at the foot of the stairs, they drifted
slowly along the walk, watching the crowd. Besides the universal
tension, there were laughter and hope and exhilaration in the faces.
The enthusiasm of this boyish multitude warmed one. The girl wished to
get into this spirit--to be one of them. Then suddenly from the babble
at their elbows came a discordant note, not long nor loud, only a few
words, penetrating and harsh with the metallic quality lent by passion.
Helen glanced over her shoulder to find that the smiles of the throng
were gone and that its eyes were bent on some scene in the street, with
an eager interest she had never seen mirrored before. Simultaneously
Glenister spoke:
Her eyes had leaped to the figures of two men in the street from whom
the rest had separated like oil from water. One was slim and well
dressed; the other bulky, mackinawed, and lowering of feature. It was
the smaller who spoke, and for a moment she misjudged his bloodshot
eyes and swaying carriage to be the result of alcohol, until she saw
that he was racked with fury.
"Make good, I tell you, quick! Give me that bill of sale, you--."
The unkempt man swung on his heel with a growl and walked away, his
course leading him towards Glenister and the girl. With two strides he
was abreast of them; then, detecting the flashing movement of the
other, he whirled like a wild animal. His voice had the snarl of a
beast in it.
The actions of both men were quick as light, yet to the girl's taut
senses they seemed theatrical and deliberate. Into her mind was seared
forever the memory of that second, as though the shutter of a camera
had snapped, impressing upon her brain the scene, sharp, clear-cut, and
vivid. The shaggy back of the large man almost brushing her, the
rage-drunken, white shirted man in the derby hat, the crowd sweeping
backward like rushes before a blast, men with arms flexed and feet
raised in flight, the glaring yellow sign of the "Gold Belt Dance Hall"
across the way--these were stamped upon her retina, and then she was
jerked violently backward, two strong arms crushed her down upon her
knees against the wall, and she was smothered in the arms of Roy
Glenister.
"My God! Don't move! We're in line!"
He crouched over her, his cheek against her hair, his weight forcing
her down into the smallest compass, his arms about her, his body
forming a living shield against the flying bullets. Over them the big
man stood, and the sustained roar of his gun was deafening. In an
instant they heard the thud and felt the jar of lead in the thin boards
against which they huddled. Again the report echoed above their heads,
and they saw the slender man in the street drop his weapon and spin
half round as though hit with some heavy hand. He uttered a cry and,
stooping for his gun, plunged forward, burying his face in the sand.
The man by Glenister's side shouted curses thickly, and walked towards
his prostrate enemy, firing at every step. The wounded man rolled to
his side, and, raising himself on his elbow, shot twice, so rapidly
that the reports blended--but without checking his antagonist's
approach. Four more times the relentless assailant fired deliberately,
his last missile sent as he stood over the body which twitched and
shuddered at his feet, its garments muddy and smeared. Then he turned
and retraced his steps. Back within arm's-length of the two who pressed
against the building he came, and as he went by they saw his coarse and
sullen features drawn and working pallidly, while the breath whistled
through his teeth. He held his course to the door they had just
quitted, then as he turned he coughed bestially, spitting out a
mouthful of blood. His knees wavered. He vanished within the portals
and, in the sickly silence that fell, they heard his hob-nailed boots
clumping slowly up the stairs.
Noise awoke and rioted down the thoroughfare. Men rushed forth from
every quarter, and the ghastly object in the dirt was hidden by a
seething mass of miners.
Glenister raised the girl, but her head rolled limply, and she would
have slipped to her knees again had he not placed his arm about her
waist. Her eyes were staring and horror-filled.
"Be ye hurt? Holy Mackinaw! When I see 'em blaze away I yells at ye fit
to bust my throat. I shore thought you was gone. Although I can't say
but this killin' was a sight for sore eyes--so neat an' genteel--still,
as a rule, in these street brawls it's the innocuous bystander that has
flowers sent around to his house afterwards."
"Them's the first two he unhitched," Dextry remarked, jerking his head
towards the object in the street. "Must have been a new gun an' pulled
hard--throwed him to the right. See!"
Even to the girl it was patent that, had she not been snatched as she
was, the bullet would have found her.
"Come away quick," she panted, and they led her into a near-by store,
where she sank upon a seat and trembled until Dextry brought her a
glass of whiskey.
"I can't go to bed. Please don't leave me! I'm too nervous. I'll go MAD
if you do. The strain of the last week has been too much for me. If I
sleep I'll see the faces of those men again."
Dextry talked with his companion, then made a purchase which he laid at
the lady's feet.
"Here's a pair of half-grown gum boots. You put 'em on an' come with
us. We'll take your mind off of things complete. An' as fer sweet
dreams, when you get back you'll make the slumbers of the just seem as
restless as a riot, or the antics of a mountain-goat which nimbly leaps
from crag to crag, and--well, that's restless enough. Come on!"
As the sun slanted up out of Behring Sea, they marched back towards the
hills, their feet ankle-deep in the soft fresh moss, while the air
tasted like a cool draught and a myriad of earthy odors rose up and
encircled them. Snipe and reed birds were noisy in the hollows and from
the misty tundra lakes came the honking of brant. After their weary
weeks on shipboard, the dewy freshness livened them magically,
cleansing from their memories the recent tragedy, so that the girl
became herself again.
"Where are we going?" she asked, at the end of an hour, pausing for
breath.
"Why, to the Midas, of course," they said; and one of them vowed
recklessly, as he drank in the beauty of her clear eyes and the grace
of her slender, panting form, that he would gladly give his share of
all its riches to undo what he had done one night on the Santa Maria.
CHAPTER V
Such a period in the progress of the Far Northwest was the nineteenth
day of July, although to those concerned in the building of this new
empire the day appealed only as the date of the coming of the law. All
Nome gathered on the sands as lighters brought ashore Judge Stillman
and his following. It was held fitting that the Senator should be the
ship to safeguard the dignity of the first court and to introduce
Justice into this land of the wild.
The interest awakened by His Honor was augmented by the fact that he
was met on the beach by a charming girl, who flung herself upon him
with evident delight.
"That's his niece," said some one. "She came up on the first
boat--name's Chester--swell looker, eh?"
Another new-comer attracted even more notice than the limb of the law;
a gigantic, well-groomed man, with keen, close-set eyes, and that
indefinable easy movement and polished bearing that come from
confidence, health, and travel. Unlike the others, he did not dally on
the beach nor display much interest in his surroundings; but, with
purposeful frown strode through the press, up into the heart of the
city. His companion was Struve's partner, Dunham, a middle-aged,
pompous man. They went directly to the offices of Dunham & Struve,
where they found the white-haired junior partner.
"Mighty glad to meet you, Mr. McNamara," said Struve. "Your name is a
household word in my part of the country. My people were mixed up in
Dakota politics somewhat, so I've always had a great admiration for you
and I'm glad you've come to Alaska. This is a big country and we need
big men."
"Did you have any trouble?" Dunham inquired when the three had
adjourned to a private room.
Struve nodded. "I see. Does she know what was in the documents?"
"Decidedly not. Women and business don't mix. I hope you didn't tell
her anything."
"The Judge told her it had something to do with preparing the way for
his court," said Dunham, "and that if the papers were not delivered
before he arrived it might cause a lot of trouble--litigation, riots,
bloodshed, and all that. He filled her up on generalities till the girl
was frightened to death and thought the safety of her uncle and the
whole country depended on her."
"Well," continued Struve, "it's dead easy to hire men to jump claims
and it's dead easy to buy their rights afterwards, particularly when
they know they haven't got any--but what course do you follow when
owners go gunning for you?"
McNamara laughed.
"I had to keep him hidden three days, for this gentle-mannered old
cannibal roamed the streets with a cannon in his hand, breathing fire
and pestilence."
"No; all the rest are Swedes and they haven't got the nerve to fight.
They couldn't lick a spoon if they tried. These other men are
different, though. There are two of them, the old one and a young
fellow. I'm a little afraid to mix it up with them, and if their claim
wasn't the best in the district, I'd say let it alone."
Struve resumed:
"Yes, gentlemen, I've been working pretty hard and also pretty much in
the dark so far. I'm groping for light. When Miss Chester brought in
the papers I got busy instanter. I clouded the title to the richest
placers in the region, but I'm blamed if I quite see the use of it.
We'd be thrown out of any court in the land if we took them to law.
What's the game--blackmail?"
"Well, it does seem small for Alec McNamara, but I can't see what else
you're up to."
"Within a week I'll be running every good mine in the Nome district."
McNamara's voice was calm but decisive, his glance keen and alert,
while about him clung such a breath of power and confidence that it
compelled belief even in the face of this astounding speech.
"That's big--awful big--TOO big," the younger man murmured. "Why, man,
it means you'll handle fifty thousand dollars a day!"
Dunham shifted his feet in the silence and licked his dry lips.
"Of course it's big, but Mr. McNamara's the biggest man that ever came
to Alaska," he said.
"And I've got the biggest scheme that ever came north, backed by the
biggest men in Washington," continued the politician. "Look here!" He
displayed a type-written sheet bearing parallel lists of names and
figures. Struve gasped incredulously.
"Those are my stockholders and that is their share in the venture. Oh,
yes; we're incorporated--under the laws of Arizona--secret, of course;
it would never do for the names to get out. I'm showing you this only
because I want you to be satisfied who's behind me."
"There's no danger. I have the books where they will be burned at the
first sign. We'd have had our own land laws passed but for Sturtevant
of Nevada, damn him. He blocked us in the Senate. However, my plan is
this." He rapidly outlined his proposition to the listeners, while a
light of admiration grew and shone in the reckless face of Struve.
"By heavens! you're a wonder!" he cried, at the close, "and I'm with
you body and soul. It's dangerous--that's why I like it."
"My niece has just told me of your service to her," the old gentleman
began. "I am happy to know you, sir."
"Besides being a brave knight and assisting ladies in distress, Mr.
Glenister is a very great and wonderful man," Helen explained, lightly.
"He owns the Midas."
"Indeed!" said the old man, his shifting eyes now resting full on the
other with a flash of unmistakable interest. "I hear that is a
wonderful mine. Have you begun work yet?"
"No. We'll commence sluicing day after to-morrow. It has been a late
spring. The snow in the gulch was deep and the ground thaws slowly.
We've been building houses and doing dead work, but we've got our men
on the ground, waiting."
"I am greatly interested. Won't you walk with us to the hotel? I want
to hear more about these wonderful placers."
"Well, they ARE great placers," said the miner, as the three walked on
together; "nobody knows HOW great because we've only scratched at them
yet. In the first place the ground is so shallow and the gold is so
easy to get, that if nature didn't safeguard us in the winter we'd
never dare leave our claims for fear of 'snipers.' They'd run in and
rob us."
"How much will the Anvil Creek mines produce this summer?" asked the
Judge.
"It's hard to tell, sir; but we expect to average five thousand a day
from the Midas alone, and there are other claims just as good."
"Absolutely, except for one jumper, and we don't take him seriously. A
fellow named Galloway relocated us one night last month, but he didn't
allege any grounds for doing so, and we could never find trace of him.
If we had, our title would be as clean as snow again." He said the last
with a peculiar inflection.
"But, my dear sir, those days are gone. The law is here and it is the
duty of every one to abide by it."
They had reached the hotel, and Glenister paused, turning to the girl
as the Judge entered. When she started to follow, he detained her.
"I came down from the hills on purpose to see you. It has been a long
week--"
"Don't talk that way," she interrupted, coldly. "I don't care to hear
it."
"See here--what makes you shut me out and wrap yourself up in your
haughtiness? I'm sorry for what I did that night--I've told you so
repeatedly. I've wrung my soul for that act till there's nothing left
but repentance."
"It is not that," she said, slowly. "I have been thinking it over
during the past month, and now that I have gained an insight into this
life I see that it wasn't an unnatural thing for you to do. It's
terrible to think of, but it's true. I don't mean that it was
pardonable," she continued, quickly, "for it wasn't, and I hate you
when I think about it, but I suppose I put myself into a position to
invite such actions. No; I'm sufficiently broad-minded not to blame you
unreasonably, and I think I could like you in spite of it, just for
what you have done for me; but that isn't all. There is something
deeper. You saved my life and I'm grateful, but you frighten me,
always. It is the cruelty in your strength, it is something away back
in you--lustful, and ferocious, and wild, and crouching."
He smiled wryly.
"I think I could like you if you did," she said, "but you can't do it.
You are a savage."
There are no clubs nor marts where men foregather for business in
the North--nothing but the saloon, and this is all and more than a
club. Here men congregate to drink, to gamble, and to traffic.
It was late in the evening when Glenister entered the Northern and
passed idly down the row of games, pausing at the crap-table, where he
rolled the dice when his turn came. Moving to the roulette-wheel, he
lost a stack of whites, but at the faro "lay-out" his luck was better,
and he won a gold coin on the "high-card." Whereupon he promptly
ordered a round of drinks for the men grouped about him, a formality
always precedent to overtures of general friendship.
As he paused, glass in hand, his eyes were drawn to a man who stood
close by, talking earnestly. The aspect of the stranger challenged
notice, for he stood high above his companions with a peculiar grace of
attitude in place of the awkwardness common in men of great stature.
Among those who were listening intently to the man's carefully
modulated tones, Glenister recognized Mexico Mullins, the ex-gambler
who had given Dextry the warning at Unalaska. As he further studied the
listening group, a drunken man staggered uncertainly through the wide
doors of the saloon and, gaining sight of the tall stranger, blinked,
then approached him, speaking with a loud voice:
McNamara nodded and turned his back coolly upon the new-comer.
"Don't turn your dorsal fin to me; I wan' to talk to ye."
"Ye won' talk to me, eh? Well, I'm goin' to talk to YOU, see? I guess
you'd listen if I told these people all I know about you. Turn around
here."
His voice was menacing and attracted general notice. Observing this,
McNamara addressed him, his words dropping clear, concise, and cold:
"Don't talk to me. You are a drunken nuisance. Go away before something
happens to you."
Again he turned away, but the drunken man seized and whirled him about,
repeating his abuse, encouraged by this apparent patience.
All this time the body lay across the threshold without a sign of life.
The buzz of the roulette-wheel was resumed and the crap-dealer began
his monotonous routine. Every eye was fixed on the nonchalant man at
the bar, but the unconscious creature outside the threshold lay
unheeded, for in these men's code it behooves the most humane to
practise a certain aloofness in the matter of private brawls.
Having completed his notes, McNamara shook hands gravely with his
companions and strode out through the door, past the bulk that sprawled
across his path, and, without pause or glance, disappeared.
"He ain't hurt none to speak of," said a bystander; then added, with
enthusiasm:
"Who's your new shift boss?" Glenister inquired of his partner, a few
days later, indicating a man in the cut below, busied in setting a line
of sluices.
Glenister laughed immoderately, for the object was unusually tall and
loose-jointed, and wore a soiled suit of yellow mackinaw. He had laid
off his coat, and now the baggy, bilious trousers hung precariously
from his angular shoulders by suspenders of alarming frailty. His legs
were lost in gum boots, also loose and cavernous, and his entire
costume looked relaxed and flapping, so that he gave the impression of
being able to shake himself out of his raiment, and to rise like a
burlesque Aphrodite. His face was overgrown with a grizzled tangle that
looked as though it had been trimmed with button-hole scissors, while
above the brush heap grandly soared a shiny, dome-like head.
"Naw! He ain't bald at all. He shaves his nob. In the early days he
wore a long flowin' mane which was inhabited by crickets, tree-toads,
and such fauna. It got to be a hobby with him finally, so that he
growed superstitious about goin' uncurried, and would back into a
corner with both guns drawed if a barber came near him. But once
Hank--that's his real name--undertook to fry some slapjacks, and in
givin' the skillet a heave, the dough lit among his forest primeval,
jest back of his ears, soft side down. Hank polluted the gulch with
langwidge which no man had ought to keep in himself without it was
fumigated. Disreppitableness oozed out through him like sweat through
an ice-pitcher, an' since then he's been known as Slapjack Simms, an'
has kept his head shingled smooth as a gun bar'l. He's a good miner,
though; ain't none better--an' square as a die."
Sluicing had begun on the Midas. Long sinuous lengths of canvas hose
wound down the creek bottom from the dam, like gigantic serpents, while
the roll of gravel through the flumes mingled musically with the rush
of waters, the tinkle of tools, and the song of steel on rock. There
were four "strings" of boxes abreast, and the heaving line of
shovellers ate rapidly into the creek bed, while teams with scrapers
splashed through the tail races in an atmosphere of softened profanity.
In the big white tents which sat back from the bluffs, fifty men of the
night shift were asleep; for there is no respite here--no night, no
Sunday, no halt, during the hundred days in which the Northland lends
herself to pillage.
"We ain't robbin' no widders an' orphans doin' it, neither," Dextry
suddenly remarked, expressing his partner's feelings closely. They
looked at each other and smiled with that rare understanding that
exceeds words.
Descending into the cut, the old man filled a gold-pan with dirt taken
from under the feet of the workers, and washed it in a puddle, while
the other watched his dexterous whirling motions. When he had finished,
they poked the stream of yellow grains into a pile, then, with heads
together, guessed its weight, laughing again delightedly, in perfect
harmony and contentment.
"I've been waitin' a turrible time fer this day," said the elder. "I've
suffered the plagues of prospectin' from the Mexicos to the Circle, an'
yet I don't begretch it none, now that I've struck pay."
While they spoke, two miners struggled with a bowlder they had
unearthed, and having scraped and washed it carefully, staggered back
to place it on the cleaned bed-rock behind. One of them slipped, and it
crashed against a brace which held the sluices in place. These boxes
stand more than a man's height above the bed-rock, resting on
supporting posts and running full of water. Should a sluice fall, the
rushing stream carries out the gold which has lodged in the riffles and
floods the bed-rock, raising havoc. Too late the partners saw the
string of boxes sway and bend at the joint. Then, before they could
reach the threatened spot to support it, Slapjack Simms, with a shriek,
plunged flapping down into the cut and seized the flume. His great
height stood him in good stead now, for where the joint had opened,
water poured forth in a cataract, He dived under the breach
unhesitatingly and, stooping, lifted the line as near to its former
level as possible, holding the entire burden upon his naked pate. He
gesticulated wildly for help, while over him poured the deluge of icy,
muddy water. It entered his gaping waistband, bulging out his yellow
trousers till they were fat and full and the seams were bursting, while
his yawning boot-tops became as boiling springs. Meanwhile he chattered
forth profanity in such volume that the ear ached under it as must have
ached the heroic Slapjack under the chill of the melting snow. He was
relieved quickly, however, and emerged triumphant, though blue and
puckered, his wilderness of whiskers streaming like limber stalactites,
his boots loosely "squishing," while oaths still poured from him in
such profusion that Dextry whispered:
"Ain't he a ring-tailed wonder? It's plumb solemn an' reverent the way
he makes them untamed cuss-words sit up an' beg. It's a privilege to be
present. That's a GIFT, that is."
"You'd better get some dry clothes," they suggested, and Slapjack
proceeded a few paces towards the tents, hobbling as though treading on
pounded glass.
He seated himself and tugged at his foot till the boot came away with a
sucking sound, then, instead of emptying the accumulation at random, he
poured the contents into Dextry's empty gold-pan, rinsing it out
carefully. The other boot he emptied likewise. They held a surprising
amount of sediment, because the stream that had emerged from the crack
in the sluices had carried with it pebbles, sand, and all the
concentration of the riffles at this point. Standing directly beneath
the cataract, most of it had dived fairly into his inviting waistband,
following down the lines of least resistance into his boot-legs and
boiling out at the knees.
With artful passes Dextry settled it in the pan bottom and washed away
the gravel, leaving a yellow, glittering pile which raised a yell from
the men who had lingered curiously.
"No, he ain't--he's too thin. He's nothing but a stringer, but he'll
pay to work."
"Gentlemen, there ain't no better way to save fine gold than with
undercurrents an' blanket riffles. I'll have to wash these garments of
mine an' clean up the soapsuds 'cause there's a hundred dollars in
gold-dust clingin' to my person this minute." He went dripping up the
bank, while the men returned to their work singing.
"Say, Glenister, we've come out to see about the title to this claim."
"Certainly, sir; if your title is good you will be protected, but the
law has arrived in Alaska and we've got to let it take its course.
There's no need of violence--none whatever--but, briefly, the situation
is this: Mr. Galloway has commenced action against you; the court has
enjoined you from working and has appointed me as receiver to operate
the mine until the suit is settled. It's an extraordinary procedure, of
course, but the conditions are extraordinary in this country. The
season is so short that it would be unjust to the rightful owner if the
claim lay idle all summer--so, to avoid that, I've been put in charge,
with instructions to operate it and preserve the proceeds subject to
the court's order. Mr. Voorhees here is the United States Marshal. He
will serve the papers."
"Hold on! Do you mean to tell me that any court would recognize such a
claim as Galloway's?"
"The law recognizes everything. If his grounds are no good, so much the
better for you."
"You can't put in a receiver without notice to us. Why, good Lord! we
never heard of a suit being commenced. We've never even been served
with a summons and we haven't had a chance to argue in our own defence."
"I have just said that this is a remarkable state of affairs and
unusual action had to be taken," McNamara replied, but the young miner
grew excited.
"Look here--this gold won't get away. It's safe in the ground. We'll
knock off work and let the claim lie idle till the thing is settled.
You can't really expect us to surrender possession of our mine on the
mere allegation of some unknown man. That's ridiculous. We won't do it.
Why, you'll have to let us argue our case, at least, before you try to
put us off."
Voorhees shook his head. "We'll have to follow instructions. The thing
for you to do is to appear before the court to-morrow and have the
receiver dismissed. If your title is as good as you say it is, you
won't have any trouble."
"You're not the only ones to suffer," added McNamara. "We've taken
possession of all the mines below here." He nodded down the gulch. "I'm
an officer of the court and under bond--"
"How much?"
"What! Why, heavens, man, the poorest of these mines is producing that
much every day!"
Glenister saw the men on horseback snatch at their holsters, and, just
in time, leaped at his foreman, for the old man had moved out into the
open, a Winchester at shoulder, his cheek cuddling the stock, his eyes
cold and narrow. The young man flung the barrel up and wrenched the
weapon from his hands.
"This is bad enough at the best. Don't let's make it any worse," said
he.
Slapjack inhaled deeply, spat with disgust, and looked over his boss
incredulously.
"Well, of all the different kinds of damn fools," he snorted, "you are
the kindest." He marched past the marshal and his deputies down to the
cut, put on his coat, and vanished down the trail towards town, not
deigning a backward glance either at the mine or at the man unfit to
fight for.
CHAPTER VII
Now, however, the show had closed, the hall had been cleared of chairs
and canvas, exposing a glassy, tempting surface, and the orchestra had
moved to the stage. They played a rollicking, blood-stirring two-step,
while the floor swam with dancers.
The men, who were mostly young, danced like college boys, while the
women, who were all young and good dancers, floated through the
measures with the ease of rose-leaves on a summer stream. Faces were
flushed, eyes were bright, and but rarely a voice sounded that was not
glad. Most of the noise came from the men, and although one caught,
here and there, a hint of haggard lines about the girlish faces, and
glimpsed occasional eyes that did not smile, yet as a whole the scene
was one of genuine enjoyment.
Suddenly the music ceased and the couples crowded to the bar. The women
took harmless drinks, the men, mostly whiskey. Rarely was the choice of
potations criticised, though occasionally some ruddy eschewer of
sobriety insisted that his lady "take the same," avowing that "hootch,"
having been demonstrated beneficial in his case, was good for her also.
Invariably the lady accepted without dispute, and invariably the man
failed to note her glance at the bartender, or the silent substitution
by that capable person of ginger-ale for whiskey or of plain water for
gin. In turn, the mixers collected one dollar from each man, flipping
to the girl a metal percentage-check which she added to her store. In
the curtained boxes overhead, men bought bottles with foil about the
corks, and then subterfuge on the lady's part was idle, but, on the
other hand, she was able to pocket for each bottle a check redeemable
at five dollars.
A stranger, straight from the East, would have remarked first upon the
good music, next upon the good looks of the women, and then upon the
shabby clothes of the men--for some of them were in "mukluk," others in
sweaters with huge initials and winged emblems, and all were collarless.
Outside in the main gambling-room there were but few women. Men crowded
in dense masses about the faro lay-out, the wheel, craps, the Klondike
game, pangingi, and the card-tables. They talked of business, of home,
of women, bought and sold mines, and bartered all things from hams to
honor. The groomed and clean, the unkempt and filthy jostled shoulder
to shoulder, equally affected by the license of the goldfields and the
exhilaration of the New. The mystery of the North had touched them all.
The glad, bright wine of adventure filled their veins, and they spoke
mightily of things they had resolved to do, or recounted with simple
diffidence the strange stories of their accomplishment.
The "Bronco Kid," familiar from Atlin to Nome as the best "bank" dealer
on the Yukon, worked the shift from eight till two. He was a slender
man of thirty, dexterous in movement, slow to smile, soft of voice, and
known as a living flame among women. He had dealt the biggest games of
the early days, and had no enemies. Yet, though many called him friend,
they wondered inwardly.
It was a strong play the Kid had to-night, for Swede Sam, of Dawson,
ventured many stacks of yellow chips, and he was a quick, aggressive
gambler. A Jew sat at the king end with ten neatly creased
one-thousand-dollar bills before him, together with piles of smaller
currency. He adventured viciously and without system, while outsiders
to the number of four or five cut in sporadically with small bets. The
game was difficult to follow; consequently the lookout, from his raised
dais, was leaning forward, chin in hand, while the group was hedged
about by eager on-lookers.
Bronco glanced quickly over his shoulder, and as he did so the breath
caught in his throat--but for only an instant. A girl stood so close
beside him that the lace of her gown brushed his sleeve. He was
shuffling at the moment and dropped a card, then nodded to her.
speaking quietly, as he stooped to regain the pasteboard:
"Howdy, Cherry?"
The Kid finished his shuffling awkwardly and slid the cards into the
box. Then the woman spoke:
"Let me have your place, Bronco."
The men gasped, the Jew snickered, the lookout straightened in his
chair.
"Better not. It's a hard game," said the Kid, but her voice was
imperious as she commanded him:
Bronco arose, whereupon she settled in his chair, tucked in her skirts,
removed her gloves, and twisted into place the diamonds on her hands.
"What the devil's this?" said the lookout, roughly. "Are you drunk,
Bronco? Get out of that chair, miss."
She turned to him slowly. The innocence had fled from her features and
the big eyes flashed warningly. A change had coarsened her like a puff
of air on a still pool. Then, while she stared at him, her lids drooped
dangerously and her lip curled.
"Throw him out, Bronco," she said, and her tones held the hardness of a
mistress to her slave.
"That's all right," the Kid reassured the lookout. "She's a better
dealer than I am. This is Cherry Malotte."
Without noticing the stares this evoked, the girl commenced. Her hands,
beautifully soft and white, flashed over the board. She dealt rapidly,
unfalteringly, with the finish of one bred to the cards, handling chips
and coppers with the peculiar mannerisms that spring from long
practice. It was seen that she never looked at her check-rack, but,
when a bet required paying, picked up a stack without turning her head;
and they saw further that she never reached twice, nor took a large
pile and sized it up against its mate, removing the extra disks, as is
the custom. When she stretched forth her hand she grasped the right
number unerringly. This is considered the acme of professional finish,
and the Bronco Kid smiled delightedly as he saw the wonder spread from
the lookout to the spectators and heard the speech of the men who stood
on chairs and tables for sight of the woman dealer.
For twenty minutes she continued, until the place became congested, and
never once did the lookout detect an error.
While she was busy, Glenister entered the front-door and pushed his way
back towards the theatre. He was worried and distrait, his manner
perturbed and unnatural. Silently and without apparent notice he passed
friends who greeted him.
"Ain't you heard? Why, the Midas has been jumped. He's in a bad
way--all broke up."
The girl suddenly ceased without finishing the deck, and arose.
"Don't stop," said the Kid, while a murmur of dismay came from the
spectators. She only shook her head and drew on her gloves with a show
of ennui.
Gliding through the crowd, she threaded about aimlessly, the recipient
of many stares though but few greetings, speaking with no one, a
certain dignity serving her as a barrier even here. She stopped a
waiter and questioned him.
"Alone?"
"Yes'm. Anyhow, he was a minute ago, unless some of the rustlers has
broke in on him."
A moment later Glenister, watching the scene below, was aroused from
his gloomy absorption by the click of the box door and the rustle of
silken skirts.
"Go out, please," he said, without turning. "I don't want company."
Hearing no answer, he began again, "I came here to be alone"--but there
he ceased, for the girl had come forward and laid her two hot hands
upon his cheeks.
"Oh, DAYS ago," she said, impatiently, "from Dawson. They told me you
had struck it. I stood it as long as I could--then I came to you. Now,
tell me about yourself. Let me see you first, quick!"
She pulled him towards the light and gazed upward, devouring him
hungrily with her great, languorous eyes. She held to his coat lapels,
standing close beside him, her warm breath beating up into his face.
He took her wrists in his and loosed her hold, then looked down on her
gravely and said:
"All over! Oh no, it isn't, boy. You think so, but it isn't--it can't
be. I love you too much to let you go."
"I don't care! Let them hear," she cried, with feminine recklessness.
"I'm proud of my love for you. I'll tell it to them--to the whole
world."
"Now, see here, little girl," he said, quietly, "we had a long talk in
Dawson and agreed that it was best to divide our ways. I was mad over
you once, as a good many other men have been, but I came to my senses.
Nothing could ever result from it, and I told you so."
"Yes, yes--I know. I thought I could give you up, but I didn't realize
till you had gone how I wanted you. Oh, it's been a TORTURE to me every
day for the past two years." There was no semblance now to the cold
creature she had appeared upon entering the gambling-hall. She spoke
rapidly, her whole body tense with emotion, her voice shaken with
passion. "I've seen men and men and men, and they've loved me, but I
never cared for anybody in the world till I saw you. They ran after me,
but you were cold. You made me come to you. Perhaps that was it.
Anyhow, I can't stand it. I'll give up everything--I'll do anything
just to be where you are. What do you think of a woman who will beg?
Oh, I've lost my pride--I'm a fool--a fool--but I can't help it."
"I'm sorry you feel this way," said Glenister. "It isn't my fault, and
it isn't of any use."
For an instant she stood quivering, while the light died out of her
face; then, with a characteristic change, she smiled till the dimples
laughed in her cheeks. She sank upon a seat beside him and pulled
together the curtains, shutting out the sight below.
"Very well"--then she put his hand to her cheek and cuddled it. "I'm
glad to see you just the same, and you can't keep me from loving you."
With his other hand he smoothed her hair, while, unknown to him and
beneath her lightness, she shrank and quivered at his touch like a
Barbary steed under the whip.
"Things are very bad with me," he said. "We've had our mine jumped."
"Bah! You know what to do. You aren't a cripple--you've got five
fingers on your gun hand."
"That's it! They all tell me that--all the old-timers; but I don't know
what to do. I thought I did--but I don't. The law has come into this
country and I've tried to meet it half-way. They jumped us and put in a
receiver--a big man--by the name of McNamara. Dex wasn't there and I
let them do it. When the old man learned of it he nearly went crazy. We
had our first quarrel. He thought I was afraid--"
"Not he," said the girl. "I know him and he knows you."
"That was a week ago. We've hired the best lawyer in Nome--Bill
Wheaton--and we've tried to have the injunction removed. We've offered
bond in any sum, but the Judge refuses to accept it. We've argued for
leave to appeal, but he won't give us the right. The more I look into
it the worse it seems, for the court wasn't convened in accordance with
law, we weren't notified to appear in our own behalf, we weren't
allowed a chance to argue our own case--nothing. They simply slapped on
a receiver, and now they refuse to allow us redress. From a legal
stand-point, it's appalling, I'm told--but what's to be done? What's
the game? That's the thing. What are they up to? I'm nearly out of my
mind, for it's all my fault. I didn't think it meant anything like this
or I'd have made a fight for possession and stood them off at least. As
it is, my partner's sore and he's gone to drinking--first time in
twelve years. He says I gave the claim away, and now it's up to me and
the Almighty to get it back. If he gets full he'll drive a four-horse
wagon into some church, or go up and pick the Judge to pieces with his
fingers to see what makes him go round."
"What've they got against you and Dextry--some grudge?" she questioned.
"No, no! We're not the only ones in trouble; they've jumped the rest of
the good mines and put this McNamara in as receiver on all of them, but
that's small comfort. The Swedes are crazy; they've hired all the
lawyers in town, and are murdering more good American language than
would fill Bering Strait. Dex is in favor of getting our friends
together and throwing the receiver off. He wants to kill somebody, but
we can't do that. They've got the soldiers to fall back on. We've been
warned that the troops are instructed to enforce the court's action. I
don't know what the plot is, for I can't believe the old Judge is
crooked--the girl wouldn't let him."
"Girl?"
Cherry Malotte leaned forward where the light shone on the young man's
worried face.
Her voice had lost its lazy caress, her lips had thinned. Never was a
woman's face more eloquent, mused Glenister as he noted her. Every
thought fled to this window to peer forth, fearful, lustful, hateful,
as the case might be. He had loved to play with her in the former days,
to work upon her passions and watch the changes, to note her features
mirror every varying emotion from tenderness to flippancy, from anger
to delight, and, at his bidding, to see the pale cheeks glow with
love's fire, the eyes grow heavy, the dainty lips invite kisses. Cherry
was a perfect little spoiled animal, he reflected, and a very dangerous
one.
"What girl?" she questioned again, and he knew beforehand the look that
went with it.
"The girl I intend to marry," he said, slowly, looking her between the
eyes.
"Wrong stall," he said, in his slow voice. "Looking for another party."
Nevertheless, his eyes had covered every inch of them--noted the drawn
curtains and the breathless poise of the woman--while his ears had
caught part of Glenister's speech.
"You won't marry her," said Cherry, quietly. "I don't know who she is,
but I won't let you marry her."
"It's time nice people were going now." She said it with a sneer at
herself. "Take me out through this crowd. I'm living quietly and I
don't want these beasts to follow me."
As they emerged from the theatre the morning air was cool and quiet,
while the sun was just rising. The Bronco Kid lighted a cigar as they
passed, nodding silently at their greeting. His eyes followed them,
while his hands were so still that the match burned through to his
fingers--then when they had gone his teeth met and ground savagely
through the tobacco so that the cigar fell, while he muttered:
"So that's the girl you intend to marry? We'll see, by God!"
CHAPTER VIII
The water front had a strong attraction for Helen Chester, and rarely
did a fair day pass without finding her in some quiet spot from which
she could watch the shifting life along its edge, the ships at anchor,
and the varied incidents of the surf.
This morning she sat in a dory pulled high up on the beach, bathed in
the bright sunshine, and staring at the rollers, while lines of
concentration wrinkled her brow. The wind had blown for some days till
the ocean beat heavily across the shallow bar, and now, as it became
quieter, longshoremen were launching their craft, preparing to resume
their traffic.
Not until the previous day had the news of her friends' misfortune come
to her, and although she had heard no hint of fraud, she began to
realize that they were involved in a serious tangle. To the questions
which she anxiously put to her uncle he had replied that their
difficulty arose from a technicality in the mining laws which another
man had been shrewd enough to profit by. It was a complicated question,
he said, and one requiring time to thrash out to an equitable
settlement. She had undertaken to remind him of the service these men
had done her, but, with a smile, he interrupted; he could not allow
such things to influence his judicial attitude, and she must not
endeavor to prejudice him in the discharge of his duty. Recognizing the
justice of this, she had desisted.
For many days the girl had caught scattered talk between the Judge and
McNamara, and between Struve and his associates, but it all seemed
foreign and dry, and beyond the fact that it bore on the litigation
over the Anvil Creek mines, she understood nothing and cared less,
particularly as a new interest had but recently come into her life, an
interest in the form of a man--McNamara.
Judge Stillman was openly delighted, while the court of one like Alec
McNamara could but flatter any girl. In his presence, Helen felt
herself rebelling at his suit, yet as distance separated them she
thought ever more kindly of it. This state of mind contrasted oddly
with her feelings towards the other man she had met, for in this
country there were but two. When Glenister was with her she saw his
love lying nakedly in his eyes and it exercised some spell which drew
her to him in spite of herself, but when he had gone, back came the
distrust, the terror of the brute she felt was there behind it all. The
one appealed to her while present, the other pled strongest while away.
Now she was attempting to analyze her feelings and face the future
squarely, for she realized that her affairs neared a crisis, and this,
too, not a month after meeting the men. She wondered if she would come
to love her uncle's friend. She did not know. Of the other she was
sure--she never could.
He said the last, not in the spirit of apology, for rarely does your
frontiersman consider that his self-indulgences require palliation, but
rather after the manner of one purveying news of mild interest, as he
would inform you that his surcingle had broken or that he had witnessed
a lynching.
"I don't know. I don't know nothin' about it, because, as I remarked
previous, I 'ain't follered the totterin' footsteps of the law none too
close. Nor do I intend to. I simply draws out of the game fer a spell,
and lets the youngster have his fling; then if he can't make good, I'll
take the cards and finish it for him.
"We're troubled a heap with coyotes them days, and finally this party
sends home for some Rooshian wolf-hounds. I'm fer pizenin' a sheep
carcass, but he says:
"'No, no, me deah man; that's not sportsman-like; we'll hunt 'em. Ay,
hunt 'em! Only fawncy the sport we'll have, ridin' to hounds!'
"'We will not,' says I. 'I ain't goin' to do no Simon Legree stunts. It
ain't man's size. Bein' English, you don't count, but I'm growed up.'
"Nothin' would do him but those Uncle Tom's Cabin dogs, however, and he
had 'em imported clean from Berkshire or Sibeery or thereabouts, four
of 'em, great, big, blue ones. They was as handsome and imposin' as a
set of solid-gold teeth, but somehow they didn't seem to savvy our play
none. One day the cook rolled a rain bar'l down-hill from the kitchen,
and when them blooded critters saw it comin' they throwed down their
tails and tore out like rabbits. After that I couldn't see no good in
'em with a spy-glass.
"'They 'ain't got no grit. What makes you think they can fight?' I
asked one day.
"Well, it wasn't a week later that he went over to the east line with
me to mend a barb wire. I had my pliers and a hatchet and some staples.
About a mile from the house we jumped up a little brown bear that
scampered off when he seen us, but bein' agin' a bluff where he
couldn't get away, he climbed a cotton-wood. H'Anglish was simply
frothin' with excitement.
"'I'll scratch his back and talk pretty to him,' says I, 'while you run
back and get a Winchester and them ferocious bull-dogs.'
"'They may be good renders,' says I, 'but don't forgit the gun.'
"'I'll shoot him in the lower jaw,' says the Britisher, 'so he cawn't
bite the dogs. It 'll give 'em cawnfidence.'
"He takes aim at Mr. Bear's chin and misses it three times runnin',
he's that excited.
"'Settle down, H'Anglish,' says I. 'He 'ain't got no double chins. How
many shells left in your gun?'" When he looks he finds there's only one
more, for he hadn't stopped to fill the magazine, so I cautions him.
"He raised her all right, and caught Mr. Bruin in the snout. What
followed thereafter was most too quick to notice, for the poor bear let
out a bawl, dropped off his limb into the midst of them ragin',
tur'ble, seventy-pun hounds, an' hugged 'em to death, one after
another, like he was doin' a system of health exercises. He took 'em to
his boosum as if he'd just got back off a long trip, then, droppin' the
last one, he made at that younger son an' put a gold fillin' in his
leg. Yes, sir; most chewed it off. H'Anglish let out a Siberian-wolf
holler hisself, an' I had to step in with the hatchet and kill the
brute though I was most dead from laughin'.
"That's how it is with me an' Glenister," the old man concluded. "When
he gets tired experimentin' with this new law game of hisn, I'll step
in an' do business on a common-sense basis."
"We won't," said he, with conviction. "I look on all lawyers with
suspicion, even to old bald-face--your uncle, askin' your pardon an'
gettin' it, bein' as I'm a friend an' he ain't no real relation of
yours, anyhow. No, sir; they're all crooked."
"Is the old man all the kin you've got?" he questioned, when she
refused to discuss the matter.
She spoke sadly and her mood blended well with the gloom of her
companion, so they stared silently out over the heaving green waters.
"It's a good thing me an' the kid had a little piece of money ahead,"
Dextry resumed later, reverting to the thought that lay uppermost in
his mind, "'cause we'd be up against it right if we hadn't. The boy
couldn't have amused himself none with these court proceedings, because
they come high. I call 'em luxuries, like brandied peaches an' silk
undershirts.
"I don't trust these Jim Crow banks no more than I do lawyers, neither.
No, sirree! I bought a iron safe an' hauled it out to the mine. She
weighs eighteen hundred, and we keep our money locked up there. We've
got a feller named Johnson watchin' it now. Steal it? Well, hardly.
They can't bust her open without a stick of 'giant' which would rouse
everybody in five miles, an' they can't lug her off bodily--she's too
heavy. No; it's safer there than any place I know of. There ain't no
abscondin' cashiers an' all that. Tomorrer I'm goin' back to live on
the claim an' watch this receiver man till the thing's settled."
When the girl arose to go, he accompanied her up through the deep sand
of the lane-like street to the main, muddy thoroughfare of the camp. As
yet, the planked and gravelled pavements, which later threaded the
town, were unknown, and the incessant traffic had worn the road into a
quagmire of chocolate-colored slush, almost axle-deep, with which the
store fronts, show-windows, and awnings were plentifully shot and
spattered from passing teams. Whenever a wagon approached, pedestrians
fled to the shelter of neighboring doorways, watching a chance to dodge
out again. When vehicles passed from the comparative solidity of the
main street out into the morasses that constituted the rest of the
town, they adventured perilously, their horses plunging, snorting,
terrified, amid an atmosphere of profanity. Discouraged animals were
down constantly, and no foot-passenger, even with rubber boots,
ventured off the planks that led from house to house.
Although it was late in the afternoon the Bronco Kid had just arisen
and was now loafing preparatory to the active duties of his profession.
He was speaking with the proprietor when Dextry and the girl sought
shelter just without the open door, so he caught a fair though fleeting
glimpse of her as she flashed a curious look inside. She had never been
so close to a gambling-hall before, and would have liked to peer in
more carefully had she dared, but her companion moved forward. At the
first look the Bronco Kid had broken off in his speech and stared at
her as though at an apparition. When she had vanished, he spoke to
Reilly:
"Who's that?"
Reilly shrugged his shoulders, then without further question the Kid
turned back towards the empty theatre and out of the back door.
Dextry and his companion had crossed to the other side and were
approaching, so the gambler gained a fair view of them. He searched
every inch of the girl's face and figure, then, as she made to turn her
eyes in his direction, he slouched away. He followed, however, at a
distance, till he saw the man leave her, then on up to the big hotel he
shadowed her. A half-hour later he was drinking in the Golden Gate
bar-room with an acquaintance who ministered to the mechanical details
behind the hotel counter.
Both men spoke in the dead, restrained tones that go with their
callings.
Although the other neither spoke nor made sign, the bartender construed
his silence as acquiescence and continued, with a conscious glance at
his own reflection while he adjusted his diamond scarf-pin: "Well, she
can have ME! I've got it fixed to meet her."
"BAH! I guess not," said the Kid, suddenly, with an inflection that
startled the other from his preening. Then, as he went out, the man
mused:
"Gee! Bronco's got the worst eye in the camp! Makes me creep when he
throws it on me with that muddy look. He acted like he was jealous."
"What!"
The old man in turn was on his feet, the grudge which he had felt
against Glenister in the past few days forgotten in this common
misfortune.
"But, look here," demanded Dextry, sharply, "the money in that safe
belongs to us. That's money we brought in from the States. The court
'ain't got no right to it. What kind of a damn law is that?"
"Oh, as to law, they don't pay any attention to it any more," said
Glenister, bitterly. "I made a mistake in not killing the first man
that set foot on the claim. I was a sucker, and now we're up against a
stiff game. The Swedes are in the same fix, too. This last order has
left them groggy." "I don't understand it yet," said Dextry.
"Why, it's this way. The Judge has issued what he calls an order
enlarging the powers of the receiver, and it authorizes McNamara to
take possession of everything on the claims--tents, tools, stores, and
personal property of all kinds. It was issued last night without notice
to our side, so Wheaton says, and they served it this morning early. I
went out to see McNamara, and when I got there I found him in our
private tent with the safe broken open."
"'What does this mean?' I said. And then he showed me the new order.
"'I'm responsible to the court for every penny of this money,' said he,
'and for every tool on the claim. In view of that I can't allow you to
go near the workings.'
"'Not go near the workings?' said I. 'Do you mean you won't let us see
the clean-ups from our own mine? How do we know we're getting a square
deal if we don't see the gold weighed?'
"'I'm an officer of the court and under bond,' said he, and the smiling
triumph in his eyes made me crazy.
"'You're a lying thief,' I said, looking at him square. 'And you're
going too far. You played me for a fool once and made it stick, but it
won't work twice.'
"He looked injured and aggrieved and called in Voorhees, the marshal. I
can't grasp the thing at all; everybody seems to be against us, the
Judge, the marshal, the prosecuting attorney--everybody. Yet they've
done it all according to law, they claim, and have the soldiers to back
them up."
"You'll find them both," said Glenister, "for McNamara rode into town
behind me."
The old prospector proceeded to the Golden Gate Hotel and inquired for
Judge Stillman's room. A boy attempted to take his name, but he seized
him by the scruff of the neck and sat him in his seat, proceeding
unannounced to the suite to which he had been directed. Hearing voices,
he knocked, and then, without awaiting a summons, walked in.
The room was fitted like an office, with desk, table, type-writer, and
law-books. Other rooms opened from it on both sides. Two men were
talking earnestly--one gray-haired, smooth-shaven, and clerical, the
other tall, picturesque, and masterful. With his first glance the miner
knew that before him were the two he had come to see, and that in
reality he had to deal with but one, the big man who shot at him the
level glances.
"We are engaged," said the Judge, "very busily engaged, sir. Will you
call again in half an hour?"
Dextry looked him over carefully from head to foot, then turned his
back on him and regarded the other. Neither he nor McNamara spoke, but
their eyes were busy and each instinctively knew that here was a foe.
"What do you mean?" said McNamara, while the Judge murmured indignantly.
"Just what I say. However, that ain't what I want to talk about. I
don't take no stock in such truck as judges an' lawyers an' orders of
court. They ain't intended to be took serious. They're all right for
children an' Easterners an' non compos mentis people, I s'pose, but
I've always been my own judge, jury, an' hangman, an' I aim to continue
workin' my legislatif, executif, an' judicial duties to the end of the
string. You look out! My pardner is young an' seems to like the idee of
lettin' somebody else run his business, so I'm goin' to give him rein
and let him amuse himself for a while with your dinky little writs an'
receiverships. But don't go too far--you can rob the Swedes, 'cause
Swedes ain't entitled to have no money, an' some other crook would get
it if you didn't, but don't play me an' Glenister fer Scandinavians.
It's a mistake. We're white men, an' I'm apt to come romancin' up here
with one of these an' bust you so you won't hold together durin' the
ceremonies."
With his last words he made the slightest shifting movement, only a
lifting shrug of the shoulder, yet in his palm lay a six-shooter. He
had slipped it from his trousers band with the ease of long practice
and absolute surety. Judge Stillman gasped and backed against the desk,
but McNamara idly swung his leg as he sat sidewise on the table. His
only sign of interest was a quickening of the eyes, a fact of which
Dextry made mental note.
"Yes," said the miner, disregarding the alarm of the lawyer, "you can
wear this court in your vest-pocket like a Waterbury, if you want to,
but if you don't let me alone, I'll uncoil its main-spring. That's all."
CHAPTER IX
SLUICE ROBBERS
"We must have money," said Glenister a few days later. "When McNamara
jumped our safe he put us down and out. There's no use fighting in this
court any longer, for the Judge won't let us work the ground ourselves,
even if we give bond, and he won't grant an appeal. He says his orders
aren't appealable. We ought to send Wheaton out to 'Frisco and have him
take the case to the higher courts. Maybe he can get a writ of
supersedeas."
"I don't rec'nize the name, but if it's as bad as it sounds it's sure
horrible. Ain't there no cure for it?"
"It simply means that the upper court would take the case away from
this one."
"Well, let's send him out quick. Every day means ten thousand dollars
to us. It 'll take him a month to make the round trip, so I s'pose he
ought to leave tomorrow on the Roanoke."
"Yes, but where's the money to do it with? McNamara has ours. My God!
What a mess we're in! What fools we've been, Dex! There's a conspiracy
here. I'm beginning to see it now that it's too late. This man is
looting our country under color of law, and figures on gutting all the
mines before we can throw him off. That's his game. He'll work them as
hard and as long as he can, and Heaven only knows what will become of
the money. He must have big men behind him in order to fix a United
States judge this way. Maybe he has the 'Frisco courts corrupted, too."
"If he has, I'm goin' to kill him," said Dextry. "I've worked like a
dog all my life, and now that I've struck pay I don't aim to lose it.
If Bill Wheaton can't win out accordin' to law, I'm goin' to proceed
accordin' to justice."
During the past two days the partners had haunted the court-room where
their lawyer, together with the counsel for the Scandinavians, had
argued and pleaded, trying every possible professional and
unprofessional artifice in search of relief from the arbitrary rulings
of the court, while hourly they had become more strongly suspicious of
some sinister plot--some hidden, powerful understanding back of the
Judge and the entire mechanism of justice. They had fought with the
fury of men who battle for life, and had grown to hate the lines of
Stillman's vacillating face, the bluster of the district-attorney, and
the smirking confidence of the clerks, for it seemed that they all
worked mechanically, like toys, at the dictates of Alec McNamara. At
last, when they had ceased, beaten and exhausted, they were too
confused with technical phrases to grasp anything except the fact that
relief was denied them; that their claims were to be worked by the
receiver; and, as a crowning defeat, they learned that the Judge would
move his court to St. Michael's and hear no cases until he returned, a
month later.
Meanwhile, McNamara hired every idle man he could lay hand upon, and
ripped the placers open with double shifts. Every day a stream of
yellow dust poured into the bank and was locked in his vaults, while
those mine-owners who attempted to witness the clean-ups were ejected
from their claims. The politician had worked with incredible swiftness
and system, and a fortnight after landing he had made good his boast to
Struve, and was in charge of every good claim in the district, the
owners were ousted, their appeals argued and denied, and the court gone
for thirty days, leaving him a clear field for his operations. He felt
a contempt for most of his victims, who were slow-witted Swedes,
grasping neither the purport nor the magnitude of his operation, and as
to those litigants who were discerning enough to see its enormity, he
trusted to his organization to thwart them.
The two partners had come to feel that they were beating against a
wall, and had also come squarely to face the proposition that they were
without funds wherewith to continue their battle. It was maddening for
them to think of the daily robbery that they suffered, for the Midas
turned out many ounces of gold at every shift; and more maddening to
realize the receiver's shrewdness in crippling them by his theft of the
gold in their safe. That had been his crowning stroke.
"We MUST get money quick," said Glenister. "Do you think we can borrow?"
"I met a feller this mornin' that's workin' on the Midas," the old man
resumed. "He came in town fer a pair of gum boots, an' he says they've
run into awful rich ground--so rich that they have to clean up every
morning when the night shift goes off 'cause the riffles clog with
gold."
Glenister stared back while his pulse pounded at something that lay in
the other's words.
"It belongs to us," the young man said. "There wouldn't be anything
wrong about it, would there?"
"God! What would happen if they caught us?" whispered the younger,
following out his thought. "They'd never let us get off the claim
alive. He couldn't find a better excuse to shoot us down and get rid of
us. If we came up before this Judge for trial, we'd go to Sitka for
twenty years."
"Sure! But it's our only chance. I'd ruther die on the Midas in a fair
fight than set here bitin' my hangnails. I'm growin' old and I won't
never make another strike. As to bein' caught--them's our chances. I
won't be took alive--I promise you that--and before I go I'll get my
satisfy. Castin' things up, that's about all a man gets in this vale of
tears, jest satisfaction of one kind or another. It'll be a fight in
the open, under the stars, with the clean, wet moss to lie down on, and
not a scrappin'-match of freak phrases and law-books inside of a
stinkin' court-room. The cards is shuffled and in the box, pardner, and
the game is started. If we're due to win, we'll win. If we're due to
lose, we'll lose. These things is all figgered out a thousand years
back. Come on, boy. Are you game?"
"Am I game?" Glenister's nostrils dilated and his voice rose a tone.
"Am I game? I'm with you till the big cash-in, and Lord have mercy on
any man that blocks our game to-night."
"We'll need another hand to help us," said Dextry. "Who can we get?"
At that moment, as though in answer, the door opened with the scant
ceremony that friends of the frontier are wont to observe, admitting
the attenuated, flapping, dome-crowned figure of Slapjack Simms, and
Dextry fell upon him with the hunger of a wolf.
It was midnight and over the dark walls of the valley peered a
multitude of stars, while away on the southern horizon there glowed a
subdued effulgence as though from hidden fires beneath the Gold God's
caldron, or as though the phosphorescence of Bering had spread upward
into the skies. Although each night grew longer, it was not yet
necessary to light the men at work in the cuts. There were perhaps two
hours in which it was difficult to see at a distance, but the dawn came
early, hence no provision had been made for torches.
Five minutes before the hour the night-shift boss lowered the gates in
the dam, and, as the rush from the sluices subsided, his men quit work
and climbed the bluff to the mess tent. The dwellings of the Midas, as
has already been explained, sat back from the creek at a distance of a
city block, the workings being thus partially hidden under the brow of
the steep bank.
No smoker on the trail will deny the luxury of a light to the most
humble, so as the negro gained his level the man reached forth to
accommodate him. Without warning, the black man leaped forward with the
ferocity of an animal and struck the other a fearful blow. The watchman
sank with a faint, startled cry, and the African dragged him out of
sight over the brow of the bank, where he rapidly tied him hand and
foot, stuffing a gag into his mouth. At the same moment two other
figures rounded the bend below and approached. They were mounted and
leading a third saddle-horse, as well as other pack-animals. Reaching
the workings, they dismounted. Then began a strange procedure, for one
man clambered upon the sluices and, with a pick, ripped out the
riffles. This was a matter of only a few seconds; then, seizing a
shovel, he transferred the concentrates which lay in the bottom of the
boxes into canvas sacks which his companion held. As each bag was
filled, it was tied and dumped into the cut. They treated but four
boxes in this way, leaving the lower two-thirds of the flume untouched,
for Anvil Creek gold is coarse and the heart of the clean-up lies where
it is thrown in. Gathering the sacks together, they lashed them upon
the pack-animals, then mounted the second string of sluices and began
as before. Throughout it all they worked with feverish haste and in
unbroken silence, every moment flashing quick glances at the figure of
the lookout who stood on the crest above, half dimmed in the shadow of
a willow clump. Judging by their rapidity and sureness, they were
expert miners.
From the tent came the voices of the night shift at table, and the
faint rattle of dishes, while the canvas walls glowed from the lights
within like great fire-flies hidden in the grass. The foreman,
finishing his meal, appeared at the door of the mess tent, and, pausing
to accustom his eyes to the gloom, peered perfunctorily towards the
creek. The watchman detached himself from the shadow, moving out into
plain sight, and the boss turned back. The two men below were now
working on the sluices which lay close under the bank and were thus
hidden from the tent.
She had come prepared to spend the night and witness the early morning
operation, so the receiver made the most of his opportunity. He showed
her over the workings, explaining the many things that were strange to
her. Not only was he in himself a fascinating figure to any woman, but
wherever he went men regarded him deferentially, and nothing affects a
woman's judgment more promptly than this obvious sign of power. He
spent the evening with her, talking of his early days and the things he
had done in the West, his story matching the picturesqueness of her
canvas-walled quarters with their rough furnishings of skins and
blankets. Being a keen observer as well as a finished raconteur, he had
woven a spell of words about the girl, leaving her in a state of tumult
and indecision when at last, towards midnight, he retired to his own
tent. She knew to what end all this was working, and yet knew not what
her answer would be when the question came which lay behind it all. At
moments she felt the wonderful attraction of the man, and still there
was some distrust of him which she could not fathom. Again her thoughts
reverted to Glenister, the impetuous, and she compared the two, so
similar in some ways, so utterly opposed in others.
It was when she heard the night shift at their meal that she threw a
silken shawl about her head, stepped into the cool night, and picked
her way down towards the roar of the creek. "A breath of air and then
to bed," she thought. She saw the tall figure of the watchman and made
for him. He seemed oddly interested in her approach, watching her very
closely, almost as though alarmed. It was doubtless because there were
so few women out here, or possibly on account of the lateness of the
hour. Away with conventions! This was the land of instinct and impulse.
She would talk to him. The man drew his hat more closely about his face
and moved off as she came up. Glenister had been in her thoughts a
moment since, and she now noted that here was another with the same
great, square shoulders and erect head. Then she saw with a start that
this one was a negro. He carried a Winchester and seemed to watch her
carefully, yet with indecision.
To express her interest and to break the silence, she questioned him,
but at the sound of her voice he stepped towards her and spoke roughly.
"What!"
Without reply the negro lowered the muzzle of his rifle till it covered
her breast and at the same time she heard the double click of the
hammer.
"Keep still and don't move," he warned. "We're desperate and we can't
take any chances, Miss."
She was wildly frightened, yet stood still while the lookout anxiously
divided his attention between her and the tents above until his
companions signalled him that they were through and the horses were
loaded. Then he spoke:
"I don't know what to do with you, but I guess I'll tie you up."
"Oh, don't you DARE!" she cried, fiercely. "I'll stand right here till
you've gone and I won't scream. I promise." She looked up at him
appealingly, at which he dipped his head, so that she caught only a
glimpse of his face, and then backed away.
"All right! Don't try it, because I'll be hidden in those bushes yonder
at the bend and I'll keep you covered till the others are gone." He
leaped down the bank, ran to the cavalcade, mounted quickly, and the
three lashed their horses into a run, disappearing up the trail around
the sharp curve. She heard the blows of their quirts as they whipped
the pack-horses.
They were long out of sight before the girl moved or made sound,
although she knew that none of the three had paused at the bend. She
only stood and gazed, for as they galloped off she had heard the scrap
of a broken sentence. It was but one excited word, sounding through the
rattle of hoofs--her own name--"Helen"; and yet because of it she did
not voice the alarm, but rather began to piece together, bit by bit,
the strange points of this adventure. She recalled the outlines of her
captor with a wrinkle of perplexity. Her fright disappeared entirely,
giving place to intense excitement. "No, no--it can't be--and yet I
wonder if it IS!" she cried. "Oh, I wonder if it could be!" She opened
her lips to cry aloud, then hesitated. She started towards the tents,
then paused, and for many moments after the hoof-beats had died out she
stayed undecided. Surely she wished to give the signal, to force the
fierce pursuit. What meant this robbery, this defiance of the law, of
her uncle's edicts and of McNamara? They were common thieves,
criminals, outlaws, these men, deserving punishment, and yet she
recalled a darker night, when she herself had sobbed and quivered with
the terrors of pursuit and two men had shielded her with their bodies.
She turned and sped towards the tents, bursting in through the canvas
door; instantly every man rose to his feet at sight of her pallid face,
her flashing eyes, and rumpled hair.
A roar shook the night air, and the men poured out past her, while the
day shift came tumbling forth from every quarter in various stages of
undress.
"Come on, men. We'll run 'em down. Get out the horses. Quick!"
He was mounted even as he spoke, and others joined him. Then turning,
he waved his long arm up the valley towards the mountains. "Divide into
squads of five and cover the hills! Run down to Discovery, one of you,
and telephone to town for Voorhees and a posse."
"Stop! Not that way. They went DOWN the gulch--three negroes."
She pointed out of the valley, towards the dim glow on the southern
horizon, and the cavalcade rode away into the gloom.
CHAPTER X
Up creek the three negroes fled, past other camps, to where the stream
branched. Here they took to the right and urged their horses along a
forsaken trail to the head-waters of the little tributary and over the
low saddle. They had endeavored to reach unfrequented paths as soon as
possible in order that they might pass unnoticed. Before quitting the
valley they halted their heaving horses, and, selecting a stagnant
pool, scoured the grease paint from their features as best they could.
Their ears were strained for sounds of pursuit, but, as the moments
passed and none came, the tension eased somewhat and they conversed
guardedly. As the morning light spread they crossed the moss-capped
summit of the range, but paused again, and, removing two saddles, hid
them among the rocks. Slapjack left the others here and rode southward
down the Dry Creek Trail towards town, while the partners shifted part
of the weight from the overloaded pack-mules to the remaining
saddle-animals and continued eastward along the barren comb of hills on
foot, leading the five horses.
"It don't seem like we'll get away this easy," said Dextry, scanning
the back trail. "If we do, I'll be tempted to foller the business
reg'lar. This grease paint on my face makes me smell like a minstrel
man. I bet we'll get some bully press notices to-morrow."
"What!" The younger man stopped and stared. "What do you mean?"
"Go on. Don't stop the horses. I ain't blind. I kin put two an' two
together."
"You'll never put those two together. Nonsense! Why, the man's a
rascal. I wouldn't let him have her. Besides, it couldn't be. She'll
find him out. I love her so much that--oh, my feelings are too big to
talk about." He moved his hands eloquently. "You can't understand."
"Um-m! I s'pose not," grunted Dextry, but his eyes were level and held
the light of the past.
"He may be a rascal," the old man continued, after a little; "I'll put
in with you on that; but he's a handsome devil, and, as for manners, he
makes you look like a logger. He's a brave man, too. Them three
qualities are trump-cards and warranted to take most any queen in the
human deck--red, white, or yellow."
"If he dares," growled Glenister, while his thick brows came forward
and ugly lines hardened in his face.
In the gray of the early morning they descended the foot-hills into the
wide valley of the Nome River and filed out across the rolling country
to the river bluffs where, cleverly concealed among the willows, was a
rocker. This they set up, then proceeded to wash the dirt from the
sacks carefully, yet with the utmost speed, for there was serious
danger of discovery. It was wonderful, this treasure of the richest
ground since the days of '49, and the men worked with shining eyes and
hands a-tremble. The gold was coarse, and many ragged, yellow lumps,
too large to pass through the screen, rolled in the hopper, while the
aprons bellied with its weight. In the pans which they had provided
there grew a gleaming heap of wet, raw gold.
Glenister forced his lathered horse down to the beach and questioned
the longshoremen who hung about.
"No; it's too late to get aboard--the last tender is on its way back,"
they informed him. "If you want to go to the 'outside' you'll have to
wait for the fleet. That only means another week, and--there she blows
now."
A ribbon of white mingled with the velvet from the steamer's funnel and
there came a slow, throbbing, farewell blast.
"Quick! You men!" he cried to the sailors. "I want the lightest dory on
the beach and the strongest oarsmen in the crowd. I'll be back in five
minutes. There's a hundred dollars in it for you if we catch that ship."
He whirled and spurred up through the mud of the streets. Bill Wheaton
was snoring luxuriously when wrenched from his bed by a dishevelled man
who shook him into wakefulness and into a portion of his clothes, with
a storm of excited instructions. The lawyer had neither time nor
opportunity for expostulation, for Glenister snatched a valise and
swept into it a litter of documents from the table.
"Hurry up, man," he yelled, as the lawyer dived frantically about his
office in a rabbit-like hunt for items. "My Heavens! Are you dead? Wake
up! The ship's leaving." With sleep still in his eyes Wheaton was
dragged down the street to the beach, where a knot had assembled to
witness the race. As they tumbled into the skiff, willing hands ran it
out into the surf on the crest of a roller. A few lifting heaves and
they were over the bar with the men at the oars bending the white ash
at every swing.
Glenister stripped off his coat and, facing the bow, pushed upon the
oars at every stroke, thus adding his strength to that of the oarsmen.
They crept rapidly out from the beach, eating up the two miles that lay
towards the ship. He urged the men with all his power till the sweat
soaked through their clothes and, under their clinging shirts, the
muscles stood out like iron. They had covered half the distance when
Wheaton uttered a cry and Glenister desisted from his work with a
curse. The Roanoke was moving slowly.
The rowers rested, but the young man shouted at them to begin again,
and, seizing a boat-hook, stuck it into the arms of his coat. He waved
this on high while the men redoubled their efforts. For many moments
they hung in suspense, watching the black hull as it gathered speed,
and then, as they were about to cease their effort, a puff of steam
burst from its whistle and the next moment a short toot of recognition
reached them. Glenister wiped the moisture from his brow and grinned at
Wheaton.
A quarter of an hour later, as they lay heaving below the ship's steel
sides, he thrust a heavy buckskin sack into the lawyer's hand.
"There's money to win the fight, Bill. I don't know how much, but it's
enough. God bless you. Hurry back!"
"I watched your race," she began. "It was very exciting and I cheered
for you."
He smiled quietly.
"What made you keep on after the ship started? I should have given
up--and cried."
"Have you never been forced to? Then it is because you are a man. Women
have to sacrifice a great deal."
Helen expected him to continue to the effect that he would never give
her up--it was in accordance with his earlier presumption--but he was
silent; and she was not sure that she liked him as well thus as when he
overwhelmed her with the boldness of his suit. For Glenister it was
delightful, after the perils of the night, to rest in the calm of her
presence and to feel dumbly that she was near. She saw him secretly
caress a fold of her dress.
If only she had not the memory of that one night on the ship. "Still,
he is trying to make amends in the best way he can," she thought.
"Though, of course, no woman could care for a man who would do such a
thing." Yet she thrilled at the thought of how he had thrust his body
between her and danger; how, but for his quick, insistent action, she
would have failed in escaping from the pest ship, failed in her
mission, and met death on the night of her landing. She owed him much.
"Did you hear what happened to the good ship Ohio?" she asked.
"No; I've been too busy to inquire. I was told the health officers
quarantined her when she arrived, that's all."
"She was sent to Egg Island with every one aboard. She has been there
more than a month now and may not get away this summer."
"I didn't do much," he said. "The fighting part is easy. It's not half
so hard as to give up your property and lie still while--"
"Did you do that because I asked you to--because I asked you to put
aside the old ways?" A wave of compassion swept over her.
"Oh, I thank you," said she. "I know it is all for the best. Uncle
Arthur wouldn't do anything wrong, and Mr. McNamara is an honorable
man."
He turned towards her to speak, but refrained. He could not tell her
what he felt certain of. She believed in her own blood and in her
uncle's friends--and it was not for him to speak of McNamara. The rules
of the game sealed his lips.
She was thinking again, "If only you had not acted as you did." She
longed to help him now in his trouble as he had helped her, but what
could she do? The law was such a confusing, intricate, perplexing thing.
"I spent last night at the Midas," she told him, "and rode back early
this morning. That was a daring hold-up, wasn't it?"
"What hold-up?"
"Your claim was robbed. Three men overcame the watchman at midnight and
cleaned the boxes."
"Yes, I saw it all," she concluded, after recounting the details. "The
negro wanted to bind me so that I couldn't give the alarm, but his
chivalry prevented. He was a most gallant darky."
"Why, I kept my word and waited until they were out of sight, then I
roused the camp, and set Mr. McNamara and his men right after them down
the gulch."
"Yes, of course. Did you think they went UP-stream?" She was looking
squarely at him now, and he dropped his eyes. "No, the posse started in
that direction, but I put them right." There was an odd light in her
glance, and he felt the blood drumming in his ears.
She sent them down-stream! So that was why there had been no pursuit!
Then she must suspect--she must know everything! Glenister was stunned.
Again his love for the girl surged tumultuously within him and demanded
expression. But Miss Chester, no longer feeling sure that she had the
situation in hand, had already started to return to the hotel. "I saw
the men distinctly," she told him, before they separated, "and I could
identify them all."
At his own house Glenister found Dextry removing the stains of the
night's adventure.
"She told me so just now, and, what's more, she sent McNamara and his
crowd down the creek instead of up. That's why we got away so easily."
"There must have been twenty thousand dollars with what I gave
Wheaton," said Glenister.
At that moment, without warning, the door was flung open, and as the
young man jerked the blankets into place he whirled, snatched the
six-shooter that Dextry had discarded, and covered the entrance.
"Don't shoot, boy!" cried the new-comer, breathlessly. "My, but you're
nervous!"
Glenister dropped his gun. It was Cherry Malotte; and, from her heaving
breast and the flying colors in her cheeks, the men saw she had been
running. She did not give them time to question, but closed and locked
the door while the words came tumbling from her:
"What!"
"Who?"
"I don't savvy what you mean," said Dextry, glancing at his partner
warningly. "We ain't done nothin'."
"Well, it's all right then. I took a long chance so you could make a
get-away if you wanted to, because they've got warrants for you for
that sluice robbery last night. Here they are now." She darted to the
window, the men peering over her shoulder. Coming up the narrow walk
they saw Voorhees, McNamara, and three others.
The house stood somewhat isolated and well back on the tundra, so that
any one approaching it by the planking had an unobstructed view of the
premises. Escape was impossible, for the back door led out into the
ankle-deep puddles of the open prairie; and it was now apparent that a
sixth man had made a circuit and was approaching from the rear.
"My God! They'll search the place," said Dextry, and the men looked
grimly in each other's faces.
Then in a flash Glenister stripped back the blankets and seized the
"pokes," leaping into the back room. In another instant he returned
with them and faced desperately the candid bareness of the little room
that they lived and slept in. Nothing could be hidden; it was folly to
think of it. There was a loft overhead, he remembered, hopefully, then
realized that the pursuers would search there first of all.
"I told you he was a hard fighter," said Dextry, as the quick footsteps
grew louder. "He ain't no fool neither. 'Stead of our bein' caught in
the mountains, I reckon we'll shoot it out here. We should have cached
that gold somewhere."
He spun the cylinder of his blackened Colt, while his face grew hard
and vulture-like.
Then Glenister opened the door carelessly and admitted the group of men.
They rapidly scoured the premises, covering every inch, paying no heed
to the girl, who watched them with indifferent eyes, nor to the old
man, who glared at their every movement. Glenister was carelessly
sarcastic, although he kept his right arm free, while beneath his
sang-froid was a thoroughly trained alertness.
McNamara directed the search with a manner wholly lacking in his former
mock courtesy. It was as though he had been soured by the gall of
defeat. The mask had fallen off now, and his character
showed--insistent, overbearing, cruel. Towards the partners he
preserved a contemptuous silence.
"Don't! Don't!" She cried her appeal to the old man. "Keep cool. You'll
be sorry, Dex--they're almost through."
The officer had not seen any movement on Dextry's part, but doubtless
her quick eye had detected signs of violence. McNamara emerged,
glowering, from the back room at that moment.
"Let them hunt," the girl was saying, while Dextry stared dazedly over
her head. "They won't find anything. Keep cool and don't act rash."
Voorhees's duties sat uncomfortably upon him at the best, and, looking
at the smouldering eyes of the two men, he became averse to further
search in a powdery household whose members itched to shoot him in the
back.
"It isn't here," he reported; but the politician only scowled, then
spoke for the first time directly to the partners:
"I've got warrants for both of you and I'm tempted to take you in, but
I won't. I'm not through yet--not by any means. I'll get you--get you
both." He turned out of the door, followed by the marshal, who called
off his guards, and the group filed back along the walk.
Impulsively Glenister laid his hands upon her shoulders. At his look
and touch her throat swelled, her bosom heaved, and the silken lids
fluttered until she seemed choked by a very flood of sweet womanliness.
She blushed like a little maid and laughed a timid, broken laugh; then
pulling herself together, the merry, careless tone came into her voice
and her cheeks grew cool and clear.
"You wouldn't trust me at first, eh? Some day you'll find that your old
friends are the best, after all."
A Raw, gray day with a driving drizzle from seaward and a leaden rack
of clouds drifting low matched the sullen, fitful mood of Glenister.
During the last month he had chafed and fretted like an animal in leash
for word of Wheaton. This uncertainty, this impotent waiting with
folded hands, was maddening to one of his spirit. He could apply
himself to no fixed duty, for the sense of his wrong preyed on him
fiercely, and he found himself haunting the vicinity of the Midas,
gazing at it from afar, grasping hungrily for such scraps of news as
chanced to reach him. McNamara allowed access to none but his minions,
so the partners knew but vaguely of what happened on their property,
even though, under fiction of law, it was being worked for their
protection.
No steps regarding a speedy hearing of the case were allowed, and the
collusion between Judge Stillman and the receiver had become so
generally recognized that there were uneasy mutterings and threats in
many quarters. Yet, although the politician had by now virtually
absorbed all the richest properties in the district and worked them
through his hirelings, the people of Nome as a whole did not grasp the
full turpitude of the scheme nor the system's perfect working.
On this day, as the clouds broke, about noon, close down on the angry
horizon a drift of smoke appeared, shortly resolving itself into a
steamer. She lay to in the offing, and through his glasses Glenister
saw that it was the Roanoke. As the hours passed and no boat put off,
he tried to hire a crew, but the longshoremen spat wisely and shook
their heads as they watched the surf.
"There's the devil of an undertow settin' along this beach," they told
him, "and the water's too cold to drownd in comfortable." So he laid
firm hands upon his impatience.
Every day meant many dollars to the watcher, and yet it seemed that
nature was resolute in thwarting him, for that night the wind freshened
and daylight saw the ship hugging the lee of Sledge Island, miles to
the westward, while the surf, white as boiling milk, boomed and
thundered against the shore.
Word had gone through the street that Bill Wheaton was aboard with a
writ, or a subpoena, or an alibi, or whatever was necessary to put the
"kibosh" on McNamara, so public excitement grew. McNamara hoarded his
gold in the Alaska Bank, and it was taken for granted that there would
lie the scene of the struggle. No one supposed for an instant that the
usurper would part with the treasure peaceably.
On the third morning the ship lay abreast of the town again and a
life-boat was seen to make off from her, whereupon the idle population
streamed towards the beach.
"She'll make it to the surf all right, but then watch out."
"We'd better make ready to haul 'em out," said another. "It's mighty
dangerous." And sure enough, as the skiff came rushing in through the
breakers she was caught.
She had made it past the first line, soaring over the bar on a foamy
roller-crest like a storm-driven gull winging in towards the land. The
wiry figure of Bill Wheaton crouched in the stern while two sailors
fought with their oars. As they gathered for their rush through the
last zone of froth, a great comber rose out of the sea behind them,
rearing high above their heads. The crowd at the surf's edge shouted.
The boat wavered, sucked back into the ocean's angry maw, and with a
crash the deluge engulfed them. There remained nothing but a swirling
flood through which the life-boat emerged bottom up, amid a tangle of
oars, gratings, and gear.
Men rushed into the water, and the next roller pounded them back upon
the marble-hard sand. There came the sound of splitting wood, and then
a group swarmed in waist-deep and bore out a dripping figure. It was a
hempen-headed seaman, who shook the water from his mane and grinned
when his breath had come.
A step farther down the beach the by-standers seized a limp form which
the tide rolled to them. It was the second sailor, his scalp split from
a blow of the gunwale. Nowhere was Wheaton.
"I got it," he said, slapping his streaming breast. "It's all right,
Glenister, I knew what delay meant so I took a long chance with the
surf." The terrific ordeal he had undergone had blanched him to the
lips, his legs wabbled uncertainly, and he would have fallen but for
the young man, who thrust an arm about his waist and led him up into
the town.
Glenister wrung his hand silently while a great satisfaction came upon
him. At last this waiting was over and his peaceful yielding to
injustice had borne fruit; had proven the better course after all, as
the girl had prophesied. He could go to her now with clean hands. The
mine was his again. He would lay it at her feet, telling her once more
of his love and the change it was working in him. He would make her see
it, make her see that beneath the harshness his years in the wild had
given him, his love for her was gentle and true and all absorbing. He
would bid her be patient till she saw he had mastered himself, till he
could come with his soul in harness.
"I am glad I didn't fight when they jumped us," he said. "Now we'll get
our property back and all the money they took out--that is, if McNamara
hasn't salted it."
"Yes; all that's necessary is to file the documents, then serve the
Judge and McNamara. You'll be back on Anvil Creek to-morrow."
Having placed their documents on record at the court-house, the two men
continued to McNamara's office. He met them with courtesy.
"I heard you had a narrow escape this morning, Mr. Wheaton. Too bad!
What can I do for you?"
"I filed certified copies of these orders with the clerk of the court
ten minutes ago, and now I make formal demand upon you to turn over the
Midas to Messrs. Glenister and Dextry, and also to return all the
gold-dust in your safe-deposit boxes in accordance with this writ." He
handed his documents to McNamara, who tossed them on his desk without
examination.
Had he been slapped in the face the attorney would not have been more
astonished.
"Why--you--"
"I won't do it, I said," McNamara repeated, sharply. "Don't think for a
minute that I haven't gone into this fight armed for everything. Writs
of supersedeas! Bah!" He snapped his fingers.
"We'll see whether you'll obey or not," said Wheaton and when he and
Glenister were outside he continued:
As they neared the Golden Gate Hotel they spied McNamara entering. It
was evident that he had slipped from the rear door of his office and
beaten them to the judicial ear.
The Judge examined the papers perfunctorily, and, although his air was
deliberate, his fingers made clumsy work of it. At last he said:
Wheaton stared at him fixedly until the old man snapped out:
"You say they are certified copies. How do I know they are? The
signatures may all be false. Maybe you signed them yourself."
The lawyer grew very white at this and stammered until Glenister drew
him out of the room.
"Come, come," he said, "we'll carry this thing through in open court.
Maybe his nerve will go back on him then. McNamara has him hypnotized,
but he won't dare refuse to obey the orders of the Circuit Court of
Appeals."
"He won't, eh? Well, what do you think he's doing right now?" said
Wheaton. "I must think. This is the boldest game I ever played in. They
told me things while I was in 'Frisco which I couldn't believe, but I
guess they're true. Judges don't disobey the orders of their courts of
appeal unless there is power back of them."
They proceeded to the attorney's office, but had not been there long
before Slapjack Simms burst in upon them.
"Hell to pay!" he panted. "McNamara's taking your dust out of the bank."
"I goes into the bank just now for an assay on some quartz samples. The
assayer is busy, and I walk back into his room, and while I'm there in
trots McNamara in a hurry. He don't see me, as I'm inside the private
office, and I overhear him tell them to get his dust out of the vault
quick."
"We've got to stop that," said Glenister. "If he takes ours, he'll take
the Swedes', too. Simms, you run up to the Pioneer Company and tell
them about it. If he gets that gold out of there, nobody knows what'll
become of it. Come on, Bill."
He snatched his hat and ran out of the room, followed by the others.
That the loose-jointed Slapjack did his work with expedition was
evidenced by the fact that the Swedes were close upon their heels as
the two entered the bank. Others had followed, sensing something
unusual, and the space within the doors filled rapidly. At the
disturbance the clerks suspended their work, the barred doors of the
safe-deposit vault clanged to, and the cashier laid hand upon the navy
Colt's at his elbow. "What's the matter?" he cried.
"We want Alec McNamara," said Glenister.
The manager of the bank appeared, and Glenister spoke to him through
the heavy wire netting.
"We hear he's trying to move that dust of ours and we won't stand for
it. Tell him to come out and not hide in there like a dog."
At these words the politician appeared beside the Southerner, and the
two conversed softly an instant, while the impatience of the crowd grew
to anger. Some one cried:
"Let's go in and drag him out," and the rumble at this was not
pleasant. Morehouse raised his hand.
"Gentlemen, Mr. McNamara says he doesn't intend to take any of the gold
away."
"No, he hasn't."
As McNamara looked into the angry eyes of the lean-faced men beyond the
grating, he felt that the game was growing close, and his blood tingled
at the thought. He had not planned on a resistance so strong and swift,
but he would meet it. He knew that they hungered for his destruction
and that Glenister was their leader. He saw further that the man's
hatred now stared at him openly for the first time. He knew that back
of it was something more than love for the dull metal over which they
wrangled, and then a thought came to him.
"Some of your work, eh, Glenister?" he mocked. "Were you afraid to come
alone, or did you wait till you saw me with a lady?"
"Come out," said his enemy, hoarsely, upon whom the insult and the
sight of the girl in the receiver's company had acted powerfully.
"Of course I'll come out, but I don't want this young lady to suffer
any violence from your friends," said McNamara. "I am not armed, but I
have the right to leave here unmolested--the right of an American
citizen." With that he raised his arms above his head. "Out of my way!"
he cried. Morehouse opened the gate, and McNamara strode through the
mob.
McNamara had seen this psychological trick tried before and now took
advantage of it to walk through the press slowly, eye to eye. He did it
theatrically, for the benefit of the girl, and, as he foresaw, the men
fell away before him--all but Glenister, who blocked him, gun in hand.
It was plain that the persecuted miner was beside himself with passion.
McNamara came within an arm's-length before pausing. Then he stopped
and the two stared malignantly at each other, while the girl behind the
railing heard her heart pounding in the stillness. Glenister raised his
hand uncertainly, then let it fall. He shook his head, and stepped
aside so that the other brushed past and out into the street.
"Mr. Morehouse, we've got orders and writs of one kind or another from
the Circuit Court of Appeals at 'Frisco directing that this money be
turned over to us." He shoved the papers towards the other. "We're not
in a mood to trifle. That gold belongs to us, and we want it."
"I can't help you," he said. "These documents are not directed to me.
They're issued to Mr. McNamara and Judge Stillman. If the Circuit Court
of Appeals commands me to deliver it to you I'll do it, but otherwise
I'll have to keep this dust here till it's drawn out by order of the
court that gave it to me. That's the way it was put in here, and that's
the way it'll be taken out."
"Then we'll take it out, anyway," cried Glenister. "We've had the worst
of it everywhere else and we're sick of it. Come on, men."
He called this last to his clerks, at the same instant whipping from
behind the counter a carbine, which he cocked. The assayer brought into
view a shot-gun, while the cashier and clerks armed themselves. It was
evident that the deposits of the Alaska Bank were abundantly
safeguarded.
"I don't aim to have any trouble with you-all," continued the
Southerner, "but that money stays here till it's drawn out right."
The crowd paused at this show of resistance, but Glenister railed at
them:
"Come on--come on! What's the matter with you?" And from the light in
his eye it was evident that he would not be balked.
Helen felt that a crisis was come, and braced herself. These men were
in deadly earnest: the white-haired banker, his pale helpers, and those
grim, quiet ones outside. There stood brawny, sun-browned men, with set
jaws and frowning faces, and yellow-haired Scandinavians in whose blue
eyes danced the flame of battle. These had been baffled at every turn,
goaded by repeated failure, and now stood shoulder to shoulder in their
resistance to a cruel law. Suddenly Helen heard a command from the
street and the quick tramp of men, while over the heads before her she
saw the glint of rifle barrels. A file of soldiers with fixed bayonets
thrust themselves roughly through the crowd at the entrance.
"It means that Judge Stillman has called upon the military to guard
this gold, that's all. Come, now, move quick." The men hesitated, then
sullenly obeyed, for resistance to the blue of Uncle Sam comes only at
the cost of much consideration.
"They're robbing us with our own soldiers," said Wheaton, when they
were outside.
"Ay," said Glenister, darkly. "We've tried the law, but they're forcing
us back to first principles. There's going to be murder here."
CHAPTER XII
COUNTERPLOTS
Glenister had said that the Judge would not dare to disobey the
mandates of the Circuit Court of Appeals, but he was wrong. Application
was made for orders directing the enforcement of the writs--steps which
would have restored possession of the Midas to its owners, as well as
possession of the treasure in bank--but Stillman refused to grant them.
"It seems like I can always fight better when I know what the other
feller's game is. I'm going to spy on that outfit."
"We've had detectives at work for weeks," said the lawyer for the
Scandinavians; "but they can't find out anything we don't know already."
Dextry said no more, but that night found him busied in the building
adjoining the one wherein McNamara had his office. He had rented a back
room on the top floor, and with the help of his partner sawed through
the ceiling into the loft and found his way thence to the roof through
a hatchway. Fortunately, there was but little space between the two
buildings, and, furthermore, each boasted the square fronts common in
mining-camps, which projected high enough to prevent observation from
across the way. Thus he was enabled, without discovery, to gain the
roof adjoining and to cut through into the loft. He crept cautiously in
through the opening, and out upon a floor of joists sealed on the lower
side, then lit a candle, and, locating McNamara's office, cut a
peep-hole so that by lying flat on the timbers he could command a
considerable portion of the room beneath. Here, early the following
morning, he camped with the patience of an Indian, emerging in the
still of that night stiff, hungry, and atrociously cross. Meanwhile,
there had been another meeting of the mine-owners, and it had been
decided to send Wheaton, properly armed with affidavits and transcripts
of certain court records, back to San Francisco on the return trip of
the Santa Maria, which had arrived in port. He was to institute
proceedings for contempt of court, and it was hoped that by
extraordinary effort he could gain quick action.
"They have had a spy on you all day, Wheaton," he began, "and they know
you're going out to the States. You'll be arrested to-morrow morning
before breakfast."
"Lord! What 'll I do? They'll watch every lighter that leaves the
beach, and if they don't catch me that way, they'll search the ship."
"I've thought it all out," said the old man, to whom obstruction acted
as a stimulant.
"Yes--but how?"
"Leave it to me. Get your things together and be ready to duck in two
hours."
"I tell you they'll search the Santa Maria from stem to stern,"
protested the lawyer, but Dextry had gone.
In the mean time the old prospector had begun at the end of Front
Street to make a systematic search of the gambling-houses. Although it
was very late they were running noisily, and at last he found the man
he wanted playing "Black Jack," the smell of tar in his clothes, the
lilt of the sea in his boisterous laughter. Dextry drew him aside.
"Mac, there's only two things about you that's any good--your silence
and your seamanship. Otherwise, you're a disreppitable, drunken insect."
The sailor grinned.
"I want you to wake up your fireman and have steam on the tug in an
hour, then wait for me below the bridge. You're chartered for
twenty-four hours, and--remember, not a word."
The old man next turned his steps to the Northern Theatre. The
performance was still in progress, and he located the man he was
hunting without difficulty.
Ascending the stairs, he knocked at the door of one of the boxes and
called for Captain Stephens.
"I'm glad I found you, Cap," said he. "It saved me a trip out to your
ship in the dark."
Dextry drew him to an isolated corner. "Me an' my partner want to send
a man to the States with you."
"All right."
"Why, they've swore out a warrant an' aim to guard the shore to-morrow.
We want you to--"
"Mr. Dextry, I'm not looking for trouble. I get enough in my own
business."
"But, see here," argued the other, "we've GOT to send him out so he can
make a pow-wow to the big legal smoke in 'Frisco. We've been
cold-decked with a bum judge. They've got us into a corner an' over the
ropes."
"I'm sorry I can't help you, Dextry, but I got mixed up in one of your
scrapes and that's plenty."
"Oh, you WON'T, eh?" said the old man, beginning to lose his temper.
"Well, you listen to me for a minute. Everybody in camp knows that me
an' the kid is on the square an' that we're gettin' the hunk passed to
us. Now, this lawyer party must get away to-night or these grafters
will hitch the horses to him on some phony charge so he can't get to
the upper court. It 'll be him to the bird-cage for ninety days. He's
goin' to the States, though, an' he's goin'--in--your--wagon! I'm
talkin' to you--man to man. If you don't take him, I'll go to the
health inspector--he's a friend of mine--an' I'll put a crimp in you
an' your steamboat, I don't want to do that--it ain't my reg'lar graft
by no means--but this bet goes through as she lays. I never belched up
a secret before. No, sir; I am the human huntin'-case watch, an' I
won't open my face unless you press me. But if I should, you'll see
that it's time for you to hunt a new job. Now, here's my scheme." He
outlined his directions to the sailor, who had fallen silent during the
warning. When he had done, Stephens said:
"I never had a man talk to me like that before, sir--never. You've
taken advantage of me, and under the circumstances I can't refuse. I'll
do this thing--not because of your threat, but because I heard about
your trouble over the Midas--and because I can't help admiring your
blamed insolence." He went back into his stall.
Steam was up, and when the Captain had let them aboard Dextry gave him
instructions, to which he nodded acquiescence. They bade the lawyer
adieu, and the little craft slipped its moorings, danced down the
current, across the bar, and was swallowed up in the darkness to
seaward. "I'll put out Wheaton's light so they'll think he's gone to
bed."
"Yes, and at daylight I'll take your place in McNamara's loft," said
Glenister. "There will be doings to-morrow when they don't find him."
They returned by the way they had come to the lawyer's room,
extinguished his light, went to their own cabin and to bed. At dawn
Glenister arose and sought his place above McNamara's office.
First had come the marshal, who imported his failure to find Wheaton.
"He left his room some time last night. My men followed him in and saw
a light in his window until two o'clock this morning. At seven o'clock
we broke in and he was gone."
"He must have got wind of our plan. Send deputies aboard the Santa
Maria; search her from keel to topmast, and have them watch the beach
close or he'll put off in a small boat. You look over the passengers
that go aboard yourself. Don't trust any of your men for that, because
he may try to slip through disguised. He's liable to make up like a
woman. You understand--there's only one ship in port, and--he mustn't
get away."
"He won't," said Voorhees, with conviction, and the listener overhead
smiled grimly to himself, for at that moment, twenty miles offshore,
lay Mac's little tug, hove to in the track of the outgoing steamship,
and in her tiny cabin sat Bill Wheaton eating breakfast.
"I won't have him get away. If he should reach 'Frisco--Tell your men
I'll give five hundred dollars to the one that finds him."
The politician cursed. "I don't believe it. He tricked you. I know he
did."
Glenister grinned into a half-eaten sandwich, then turned upon his back
and lay thus on the plank, identifying the speakers below by their
voices.
He kept his post all day. Later in the evening he heard Struve enter.
The man had been drinking.
"So he got away, eh?" he began. "I was afraid he would. Smart fellow,
that Wheaton."
"He didn't get away," said McNamara. "He's in town yet. Just let me
land him in jail on some excuse! I'll hold him till snow flies." Struve
sank into a chair and lit a cigarette with wavering hand.
"This's a hell of a game, ain't it, Mac? D'you s'pose we'll win?"
"Win? Aren't we winning? What do you call this? I only hope we can lay
hands on Wheaton. He knows things. A little knowledge is a dangerous
thing, but more is worse. Lord! If only I had a MAN for judge in place
of Stillman! I don't know why I brought him."
"That's right. Too weak. He hasn't got the backbone of an angleworm. He
ain't half the man that his niece is. THERE'S a girl for you! Say!
What'd we do without her, eh? She's a pippin!" Glenister felt a sudden
tightening of every muscle. What right had that man's liquor-sodden
lips to speak so of her?
"She's a brave little woman all right. Just look how she worked
Glenister and his fool partner. It took nerve to bring in those
instructions of yours alone; and if it hadn't been for her we'd never
have won like this. It makes me laugh to think of those two men stowing
her away in their state-room while they slept between decks with the
sheep, and her with the papers in her bosom all the time. Then, when we
got ready to do business, why, she up and talks them into giving us
possession of their mine without a fight. That's what I call
reciprocating a man's affection."
Glenister's nails cut into his flesh, while his face went livid at the
words. He could not grasp it at once. It made him sick--physically
sick--and for many moments he strove blindly to beat back the hideous
suspicion, the horror that the lawyer had aroused. His was not a
doubting disposition, and to him the girl had seemed as one pure,
mysterious, apart, angelically incapable of deceit. He had loved her,
feeling that some day she would return his affection without fail. In
her great, unclouded eyes he had found no lurking-place for
double-dealing. Now--God! It couldn't be that all the time she had
KNOWN!
He had lost a part of the lawyer's speech, but peered through his
observation-hole again.
McNamara was at the window gazing out into the dark street, his back
towards the lawyer, who lolled in the chair, babbling garrulously of
the girl. Glenister ground his teeth--a frenzy possessed him to loose
his anger, to rip through the frail ceiling with naked hands and fall
vindictively upon the two men.
"She looked good to me the first time I saw her," continued Struve. He
paused, and when he spoke again a change had coarsened his features,
"Say, I'm crazy about her, Mac. I tell you, I'm crazy--and she likes
me--I know she does--or, anyway, she would--"
"Do you mean that you're in love with her?" asked the man at the
window, without shifting his position. It seemed that utter
indifference was in his question, although where the light shone on his
hands, tight-clinched behind his back, they were bloodless.
His miserable words died with a gurgle, for McNamara had silently
leaped and throttled him where he sat, pinning him to the wall.
Glenister saw the big politician shift his fingers slightly on Struve's
throat and then drop his left hand to his side, holding his victim
writhing and helpless with his right despite the man's frantic
struggles. McNamara's head was thrust forward from his shoulders,
peering into the lawyer's face. Strove tore ineffectually at the iron
arm which was squeezing his life out, while for endless minutes the
other leaned his weight against him, his idle hand behind his back, his
legs braced like stone columns, as he watched his victim's struggles
abate.
Struve fought and wrenched while his breath caught in his throat with
horrid, sickening sounds, but gradually his eyes rolled farther and
farther back till they stared out of his blackened visage, straight up
towards the ceiling, towards the hole through which Glenister peered.
His struggles lessened, his chin sagged, and his tongue protruded, then
he sat loose and still. The politician flung him out into the room so
that he fell limply upon his face, then stood watching him. Finally,
McNamara passed out of the watcher's vision, returning with a
water-bucket. With his foot he rolled the unconscious wretch upon his
back, then drenched him. Replacing the pail, he seated himself, lit a
cigar, and watched the return of life into his victim. He made no move,
even to drag him from the pool in which he lay.
Struve groaned and shuddered, twisted to his side, and at last sat up
weakly. In his eyes there was now a great terror, while in place of his
drunkenness was only fear and faintness--abject fear of the great bulk
that sat and smoked and stared at him so fishily. He felt uncertainly
of his throat, and groaned again.
"Why did you do that?" he whispered; but the other made no sign. He
tried to rise, but his knees relaxed; he staggered and fell. At last he
gained his feet and made for the door; then, when his hand was on the
knob, McNamara spoke through his teeth, without removing his cigar.
"Don't ever talk about her again. She is going to marry me."
When he was alone he looked curiously up at the ceiling over his head.
"The rats are thick in this shack," he mused. "Seems to me I heard a
whole swarm of them."
A few moments later a figure crept through the hole in the roof of the
house next door and thence down into the street. A block ahead was the
slow-moving form of Attorney Struve. Had a stranger met them both he
would not have known which of the two had felt at his throat the clutch
of a strangler, for each was drawn and haggard and swayed as he went.
At rare intervals during the past years he had staggered in from a long
march where, for hours, he had waged a bitter war with cold and hunger,
his limbs clumsy with fatigue, his garments wet and stiff, his mind
slack and sullen. At such extreme seasons he had felt a consuming
thirst, a thirst which burned and scorched until his very bones cried
out feverishly. Not a thirst for water, nor a thirst which eaten snow
could quench, but a savage yearning of his whole exhausted system for
some stimulant, for some coursing fiery fluid that would burn and
strangle. A thirst for whiskey--for brandy! Remembering these
occasional ferocious desires, he had become charitable to such
unfortunates as were too weak to withstand similar temptations.
As he elbowed in through the crowd at the Northern, those next him made
room at the bar for they recognized the hunger that peers thus from
men's faces. Their manner recalled Glenister to his senses, and he
wrenched himself away. This was not some solitary, snow-banked
road-house. He would not stand and soak himself, shoulder to shoulder
with stevedores and longshoremen. This was something to be done in
secret. He had no pride in it. The man on his right raised a glass, and
the young man strangled a madness to tear it from his hands. Instead,
he hurried back to the theatre and up to a box, where he drew the
curtains.
Across the theatre Cherry Malotte had seen him enter and jerk the
curtains together. She arose and went to him, entering without ceremony.
"Thank you for your few well-chosen remarks," she laughed. "Why don't
you ask me to spring some good, original jokes? You look like the
finish to a six-day go-as-you please. What's up?"
She talked to him for a moment until the waiter entered, then, when she
saw what he bore, she snatched the glass from the tray and poured the
whiskey on the floor. Glenister was on his feet and had her by the
wrist.
"What's the matter?" Cherry insisted. "I never saw you act so. You know
you don't drink. I won't let you. It's booze--booze, I tell you, fit
for fools and brawlers. Don't drink it, Roy. Are you in trouble?"
"I say I'm thirsty--and I will have it! How do you know what it is to
smoulder inside, and feel your veins burn dry?"
"It's something about that girl," the woman said, with quiet
conviction. "She's double-crossed you."
"Well, so she has--but what of it? I'm thirsty. She's going to marry
McNamara. I've been a fool." He ground his teeth and reached for the
drink with which the boy had returned.
"McNamara is a crook, but he's a man, and he never drank a drop in his
life." The girl said it, casually, evenly, but the other stopped the
glass half-way to his lips.
Glenister looked at the whiskey a moment, then set it back on the tray.
"Bring two lemonades," he said, and with a laugh which was half a sob
Cherry Malotte leaned forward and kissed him.
"You're too good a man to drink. Now, tell me all about it."
"Oh, it's too long! I've just learned that the girl is in, hand and
glove, with the Judge and McNamara--that's all. She's an advance
agent--their lookout. She brought in their instructions to Struve and
persuaded Dex and me to let them jump our claim. She got us to trust in
the law and in her uncle. Yes, she hypnotized my property out of me and
gave it to her lover, this ward politician. Oh, she's smooth, with all
her innocence! Why, when she smiles she makes you glad and good and
warm, and her eyes are as honest and clear as a mountain pool, but
she's wrong--she's wrong--and--great God! how I love her!" He dropped
his face into his hands.
When she had pled with him for himself a moment before Cherry Malotte
was genuine and girlish but now as he spoke thus of the other woman a
change came over her which he was too disturbed to note. She took on
the subtleness that masked her as a rule, and her eyes were not
pleasant.
"Do you remember when I warned you and Dextry that they were coming to
search your cabin for the gold? Well, that girl put them on to you. I
found it out afterwards. She keeps the keys to McNamara's safety vault
where your dust lies, and she's the one who handles the Judge. It isn't
McNamara at all." The woman lied easily, fluently, and the man believed
her.
"Do you remember when they broke into your safe and took that money?"
"Yes."
"Well, what made them think you had ten thousand in there?"
Glenister arose. "That's all I want to hear now. I'm going crazy. My
mind aches, for I've never had a fight like this before and it hurts.
You see, I've been an animal all these years. When I wanted to drink, I
drank, and what I wanted, I got, because I've been strong enough to
take it. This is new to me. I'm going down-stairs now and try to think
of something else--then I'm going home."
When he had gone she pulled back the curtains, and, leaning her chin in
her hands, with elbows on the ledge, gazed down upon the crowd. The
show was over and the dance had begun, but she did not see it, for she
was thinking rapidly with the eagerness of one who sees the end of a
long and weary search. She did not notice the Bronco Kid beckoning to
her nor the man with him, so the gambler brought his friend along and
invaded her box. He introduced the man as Mr. Champian.
"No; I'd rather look on. I feel sociable. You're a society man, Mr.
Champian. Don't you know anything of interest? Scandal or the like?"
"Can't say that I do. My wife attends to all that for the family. But I
know there's lots of it. It's funny to me, the airs some of these
people assume up here, just as though we weren't all equal, north of
Fifty-three. I never heard the like."
"The last I heard was about the Judge's niece, Miss Chester."
Cherry Malotte turned abruptly, while the Kid slowly lowered the front
legs of his chair to the floor.
"Why, it seems she compromised herself pretty badly with this fellow
Glenister coming up on the steamer last spring. Mighty brazen,
according to my wife. Mrs. Champian was on the same ship and says she
was horribly shocked."
Ah! Glenister had told her only half the tale, thought the girl. The
truth was baring itself. At that moment Champian thought she looked the
typical creature of the dance-halls, the crafty, jealous, malevolent
adventuress.
"She IS a lady," said the Kid. He sat bolt upright and rigid, and the
knuckles of his clinched hands were very white. In the shadow they did
not note that his dark face was ghastly, nor did he say more except to
bid Champian good-bye when he left, later on. After the door had
closed, however, the Kid arose and stretched his muscles, not
languidly, but as though to take out the cramp of long tension. He wet
his lips, and his mouth was so dry that the sound caused the girl to
look up.
"What are you grinning at?" Then, as the light struck his face, she
started. "My! How you look! What ails you? Are you sick?" No one, from
Dawson down, had seen the Bronco Kid as he looked to-night.
She wrung her hands, which is a bad sign in a capable person, and as
Glenister crossed the floor below in her sight she said, "Ah-h--I could
kill him for that!"
"So could I," said the Kid, and left her without adieu.
CHAPTER XIII
For a long time Cherry Malotte sat quietly thinking, removed by her
mental stress to such an infinite distance from the music and turmoil
beneath that she was conscious of it only as a formless clamor. She had
tipped a chair back against the door, wedging it beneath the knob so
that she might be saved from interruption, then flung herself into
another seat and stared unseeingly. As she sat thus, and thought, and
schemed, harsh and hateful lines seemed to eat into her face. Now and
then she moaned impatiently, as though fearing lest the strategy she
was plotting might prove futile; then she would rise and pace her
narrow quarters. She was unconscious of time, and had spent perhaps two
hours thus, when amid the buzz of talk in the next compartment she
heard a name which caused her to start, listen, then drop her
preoccupation like a mantle. A man was speaking of Glenister.
Excitement thrilled his voice.
"I never saw anything like it since McMaster's Night in Virginia City,
thirteen years ago. He's RIGHT."
"Well, perhaps so," the other replied, doubtfully, "but I don't care to
back you. I never 'staked' a man in my life."
"Then LEND me the money. I'll pay it back in an hour, but for Heaven's
sake be quick. I tell you he's as right as a golden guinea. It's the
lucky night of his life. Why, he turned over the Black Jack game in
four bets. In fifteen minutes more we can't get close enough to a table
to send in our money with a messenger-boy--every sport in camp will be
here."
"I'll stake you to fifty," the second man replied, in a tone that
showed a trace of his companion's excitement.
So Glenister was gambling, the girl learned, and with such luck as to
break the Black Jack game and excite the greed of every gambler in
camp. News of his winnings had gone out into the street, and the
sporting men were coming to share his fortune, to fatten like vultures
on the adversity of their fellows. Those who had no money to stake were
borrowing, like the man next door.
She left her retreat, and, descending the stairs, was greeted by a
strange sight. The dance-hall was empty of all but the musicians, who
blew and fiddled lustily in vain endeavor to draw from the rapidly
swelling crowd that thronged the gambling-room and stretched to the
door. The press was thickest about a table midway down the hall. Cherry
could see nothing of what went on there, for men and women stood ten
deep about it and others perched on chairs and tables along the walls.
A roar arose suddenly, followed by utter silence; then came the clink
and rattle of silver. A moment, and the crowd resumed its laughter and
talk.
"All down, boys," sounded the level voice of the dealer. "The field or
the favorite. He's made eighteen straight passes. Get your money on the
line." There ensued another breathless instant wherein she heard the
thud of dice, then followed the shout of triumph that told what the
spots revealed. The dealer payed off. Glenister reared himself head and
shoulders above the others and pushed out through the ring to the
roulette-wheel. The rest followed. Behind the circular table they had
quitted, the dealer was putting away his dice, and there was not a coin
in his rack. Mexico Mullins approached Cherry, and she questioned him.
"He just broke the crap game," Mullins told her; "nineteen passes
without losing the bones."
"Oh, he didn't win much himself, but it's the people betting with him
that does the damage! They're gamblers, most of them, and they play the
limit. He took out the Black Jack bank-roll first, $4,000, then cleaned
the 'Tub.' By that time the tin horns began to come in. It's the
greatest run I ever see."
"Now, don't you know that I never play anything but 'bank'? If he lasts
long enough to reach the faro lay-out, I'll get mine."
The excitement of the crowd began to infect the girl, even though she
looked on from the outside. The exultant voices, the sudden hush, the
tensity of nerve it all betokened, set her a-thrill. A stranger left
the throng and rushed to the spot where Cherry and Mexico stood
talking. He was small and sandy, with shifting glance and chinless jaw.
His eyes glittered, his teeth shone rat-like through his dry lips, and
his voice was shrill. He darted towards them like some furtive,
frightened little animal, unnaturally excited.
"I guess that isn't so bad for three bets!" He shook a sheaf of
bank-notes at them.
"I am too wise. Ha! I know when to quit. He can't win steady--he don't
play any system."
"There he goes now," the little man cried as the uproar arose. "I told
you he'd lose." At the voice of the multitude he wavered as though
affected by some powerful magnet.
"Do you s'pose it's safe? I never saw a man bet so reckless. I guess
I'd better quit, eh?" He noted the sneer on the woman's face, and
without waiting a reply dashed off again. They saw him clamorously
fight his way in towards a post at the roulette-table. "Let me through!
I've got money and I want to play it!"
"There are plenty of his sort here," the girl remarked; "his soul would
fit in a flea-track." She spied the Bronco Kid sauntering back towards
her and joined him. He leaned against the wall, watching the gossamer
thread of smoke twist upward from his cigarette, seemingly oblivious to
the surroundings, and showing no hint of the emotion he had displayed
two hours before.
"This is a big killing, isn't it?" said the girl. The gambler nodded,
murmuring indifferently.
She glanced at the long trail of devastated tables behind Glenister and
his followers. At that instant the sound told that the miner had won
again, and it dawned upon Cherry that the gambler beside her stood too
quietly, that his hand and voice were too steady, his glance too cold
to be natural. The next moment approved her instinct.
The musicians, grown tired of their endeavors to lure back the dancers,
determined to join the excitement, and ceased playing. The leader laid
down his violin, the pianist trailed up the key-board with a departing
twitter and quit his stool. They all crossed the hall, headed for the
crowd, some of them making ready to bet. As they approached the Bronco
Kid, his lips thinned and slid apart slightly, while out of his
heavy-lidded eyes there flared unreasoning rage. Stepping forward, he
seized the foremost man and spun him about violently.
"Why, nobody wants to dance, so we thought we'd go out front for a bit."
"Get back, damn you!" It was his first chance to vent the passion
within him. A glance at his maddened features was sufficient for the
musicians, and they did not delay. By the time they had resumed their
duties, however, the curtains of composure had closed upon the Kid,
masking his emotion again; but from her brief glimpse Cherry Malotte
knew that this man was not of ice, as some supposed. He turned to her
and said, "Do you mean what you said up-stairs?"
"I could."
"I HATE him," she interrupted, hoarsely. He gave her a mirthless smile,
and spying the crap-dealer leaving his bankrupt table, called him over
and said:
"Toby, I want you to 'drive the hearse' when Glenister begins to play
faro. I'll deal. Understand?"
"I never dealt a crooked card in this camp," exclaimed the Kid, "but
I'll 'lay' that man to-night or I'll kill him! I'll use a 'sand-tell,'
see! And I want to explain my signals to you. If you miss the signs
you'll queer us both and put the house on the blink."
Cherry gathered that Glenister was still winning, for a glimpse of the
wheel-rack between the shoulders of those ahead showed that the checks
were nearly out of it.
Plainly it was but a question of minutes, so she backed out and took
her station beside the faro-table where the Bronco Kid was dealing. His
face wore its colorless mask of indifference; his long white hands
moved slowly with the certainty that betokened absolute mastery of his
art. He was waiting. The ex-crap dealer was keeping cases.
The group left the roulette-table in a few moments and surrounded her,
Glenister among the others. He was not the man she knew. In place of
the dreary hopelessness with which he had left her, his face was
flushed and reckless, his collar was open, showing the base of his
great, corded neck, while the lust of the game had coarsened him till
he was again the violent, untamed, primitive man of the frontier. His
self-restraint and dignity were gone. He had tried the new ways, and
they were not for him. He slipped back, and the past swallowed him.
After leaving Cherry he had sought some mental relief by idly risking
the silver in his pocket. He had let the coins lie and double, then
double again and again. He had been indifferent whether he won or lost,
so assumed a reckless disregard for the laws of probability, thinking
that he would shortly lose the money he had won and then go home. He
did not want it. When his luck remained the same, he raised the stakes,
but it did not change--he could not lose. Before he realized it, other
men were betting with him, animated purely by greed and craze of the
sport. First one, then another joined till game after game was closed,
and each moment the crowd had grown in size and enthusiasm so that its
fever crept into him, imperceptibly at first, but ever increasing, till
the mania mastered him.
"One hundred, and two," the Kid answered, which in the vernacular means
that any sum up to $200 be laid on one card save only on the last turn,
when the amount is lessened by half.
Without more ado they commenced. The Kid handled his cards smoothly,
surely, paying and taking bets with machine-like calm. The on-lookers
ceased talking and prepared to watch, for now came the crucial test of
the evening. Faro is to other games as war is to jackstraws.
For a time Glenister won steadily till there came a moment when many
stacks of chips lay on the deuce. Cherry saw the Kid "flash" to the
case-keeper, and the next moment he had "pulled two." The deuce lost.
It was his first substantial gain, and the players paid no attention.
At the end of half an hour the winnings were slightly in favor of the
"house." Then Glenister said, "This is too slow. I want action."
Thus it became possible to wager $400 on a card, and the Kid began
really to play. Glenister now lost steadily, not in large amounts, but
with tantalizing regularity. Cherry had never seen cards played like
this. The gambler was a revelation to her--his work was wonderful. Ill
luck seemed to fan the crowd's eagerness, while, to add to its
impatience, the cases came wrong twice in succession, so that those who
would have bet heavily upon the last turn had their money given back.
Cherry saw the confusion of the "hearse-driver" even quicker than did
Bronco. Toby was growing rattled. The dealer's work was too fast for
him, and yet he could offer no signal of distress for fear of
annihilation at the hands of those crowded close to his shoulder. In
the same way the owner of the game could make no objection to his
helper's incompetence for fear that some by-stander would volunteer to
fill the man's part--there were many present capable of the trick. He
could only glare balefully across the table at his unfortunate
confederate.
They had not gone far on the next game before Cherry's quick eye
detected a sign which the man misinterpreted. She addressed him,
quietly, "You'd better brush up your plumes."
In spite of his anger the Bronco Kid smiled. Humor in him was strangely
withered and distorted, yet here was a thrust he would always remember
and recount with glee in years to come. He feared there were other
faro-dealers present who might understand the hint, but there was none
save Mexico Mullins, whose face was a study--mirth seemed to be
strangling him. A moment later the girl spoke to the case-keeper again.
"I want a bigger limit. Is this some boy's game? Throw her open."
The gambler shot a triumphant glance at the girl and acquiesced. "All
right, the limit is the blue sky. Pile your checks to the roof-pole."
He began to shuffle.
Within the crowded circle the air was hot and fetid with the breath of
men. The sweat trickled down Glenister's brown skin, dripping from his
jaw unnoticed. He arose and ripped off his coat, while those standing
behind shifted and scuffed their feet impatiently. Besides Roy, there
were but three men playing. They were the ones who had won heaviest at
first. Now that luck was against them they were loath to quit.
Roy bet $100 on the "popular" card. On the third turn he lost. He bet
$200 next and lost. He set out a stack of $400 and lost for the third
time. Fortune had turned her face. He ground his teeth and doubled
until the stakes grew enormous, while the dealer dealt monotonously.
The spots flashed and disappeared, taking with them wager after wager.
Glenister became conscious of a raging, red fury which he had hard
shift to master. It was not his money--what if he did lose? He would
stay until he won. He would win. This luck would not, could not,
last--and yet with diabolic persistence he continued to choose the
losing cards. The other men fared better till be yielded to their
judgment, when the dealer took their money also.
Strange to say, the fickle goddess had really shifted her banner at
last, and the Bronco Kid was dealing straight faro now. He was too good
a player to force a winning hand, and Glenister's ill-fortune became as
phenomenal as his winning had been. The girl who figured in this drama
was keyed to the highest tension, her eyes now on her counters, now
searching the profile of her victim. Glenister continued to lose and
lose and lose, while the girl gloated over his swift-coming ruin. When
at long intervals he won a bet she shrank and shivered for fear he
might escape. If only he would risk it all--everything he had. He would
have to come to her then!
The end was closer than she realized. The throng hung breathless upon
each move of the players, while there was no sound but the noise of
shifting chips and the distant jangle of the orchestra. The lookout sat
far forward upon his perch, his hands upon his knees, his eyes frozen
to the board, a dead cigar clenched between his teeth. Crowded upon his
platform were miners tense and motionless as statues. When a man spoke
or coughed, a score of eyes stared at him accusingly, then dropped to
the table again.
Cherry Malotte's fingers were like ice and shook till the buttons of
her case-keeper rattled, her heart raced till she could not breathe,
while something rose up and choked her. If Glenister won this bet he
would quit; she felt it. If he lost, ah! what could the Kid there feel,
the man who was playing for a paltry vengeance, compared to her whose
hope of happiness, of love, of life hinged on this wager?
Evidently the Bronco Kid knew what card lay next below, for he offered
her no sign, and as Glenister leaned back he slowly and firmly pushed
the top card out of the box. Although this was the biggest turn of his
life, he betrayed no tremor. His gesture displayed the nine of
diamonds, and the crowd breathed heavily. The king had not won. Would
it lose? Every gaze was welded to the tiny nickelled box. If the
face-card lay next beneath the nine-spot, the heaviest wager in Alaska
would have been lost; if it still remained hidden on the next turn, the
money would be safe for a moment.
Slowly the white hand of the dealer moved back; his middle finger
touched the nine of diamonds; it slid smoothly out of the box, and
there in its place frowned the king of clubs. At last the silence was
broken.
Men spoke, some laughed, but in their laughter was no mirth. It was
more like the sound of choking. They stamped their feet to relieve the
grip of strained muscles. The dealer reached forth and slid the stack
of bills into the drawer at his waist without counting. The case-keeper
passed a shaking hand over her face, and when it came away she saw
blood on her fingers where she had sunk her teeth into her lower lip.
Glenister did not rise. He sat, heavy-browed and sullen, his jaw thrust
forward, his hair low upon his forehead, his eyes bloodshot and dead.
"I'll sit the hand out if you'll let me bet the 'finger,'" said he.
When a man requests this privilege it means that he will call the
amount of his wager without producing the visible stakes, and the
dealer may accept or refuse according to his judgment of the bettor's
responsibility. It is safe, for no man shirks a gambling debt in the
North, and thousands may go with a nod of the head though never a cent
be on the board.
There were still a few cards in the box, and the dealer turned them,
paying the three men who played. Glenister took no part, but sat bulked
over his end of the table glowering from beneath his shock of hair.
Cherry was deathly tired. The strain of the last hour had been so
intense that she could barely sit in her seat, yet she was determined
to finish the hand. As Bronco paused before the last turn, many of the
by-standers made bets. They were the "case-players" who risked money
only on the final pair, thus avoiding the chance of two cards of like
denomination coming together, in which event ("splits" it is called)
the dealer takes half the money. The stakes were laid at last and the
deal about to start when Glenister spoke. "Wait! What's this place
worth, Bronco?"
"You own this outfit?" He waved his hand about the room. "Well, what
does it stand you?"
The gambler hesitated an instant while the crowd pricked up its ears,
and the girl turned wondering, troubled eyes upon the miner. What would
he do now?
"Counting bank rolls, fixtures, and all, about a hundred and twenty
thousand dollars. Why?"
"I'll pick the ace to lose, my one-half interest in the Midas against
your whole damned lay-out!"
There was an absolute hush while the realization of this offer smote
the on-lookers. It took time to realize it. This man was insane. There
were three cards to choose from--one would win, one would lose, and one
would have no action.
Of all those present only Cherry Malotte divined even vaguely the real
reason which prompted the man to do this. It was not "gameness," nor
altogether a brutish stubbornness which would not let him quit, It was
something deeper. He was desolate and his heart was gone. Helen was
lost to him--worse yet, was unworthy, and she was all he cared for.
What did he want of the Midas with its lawsuits, its intrigues, and its
trickery? He was sick of it all--of the whole game--and wanted to get
away. If he won, very well. If he lost, the land of the Aurora would
know him no more.
When he put his proposition, the Bronco Kid dropped his eyes as though
debating. The girl saw that he studied the cards in his box intently
and that his fingers caressed the top one ever so softly during the
instant the eyes of the rest were on Glenister. The dealer looked up at
last, and Cherry saw the gleam of triumph in his eye; he could not mask
it from her, though his answering words were hesitating. She knew by
the look that Glenister was a pauper.
"You're on!"
The girl felt that she was fainting. She wanted to scream. The triumph
of this moment stifled her--or was it triumph, after all? She heard the
breath of the little man behind her rattle as though he were being
throttled, and saw the lookout pass a shaking hand to his chin, then
wet his parched lips. She saw the man she had helped to ruin bend
forward, his lean face strained and hard, an odd look of pain and
weariness in his eyes. She never forgot that look. The crowd was frozen
in various attitudes of eagerness, although it had not yet recovered
from the suspense of the last great wager. It knew the Midas and what
it meant. Here lay half of it, hidden beneath a tawdry square of
pasteboard. With maddening deliberation the Kid dealt the top card.
Beneath it was the trey of spades. Glenister said no word nor made a
move. Some one coughed, and it sounded like a gunshot. Slowly the
dealer's fingers retraced their way. He hesitated purposely and leered
at the girl, then the three-spot disappeared and beneath it lay the ace
as the king had lain on that other wager. It spelled utter ruin to
Glenister. He raised his eyes blindly, and then the deathlike silence
of the room was shattered by a sudden crash. Cherry Malotte had closed
her check-rack violently, at the same instant crying shrill and clear:
"That bet is off! The cases are wrong!"
Glenister half rose, overturning his chair; the Kid lunged forward
across the table, and his wonderful hands, tense and talon-like, thrust
themselves forward as though reaching for the riches she had snatched
away. They worked and writhed and trembled as though in dumb fury, the
nails sinking into the oil-cloth table-cover. His face grew livid and
cruel, while his eyes blazed at her till she shrank from him
affrightedly, bracing herself away from the table with rigid arms.
"Christ!"
He raised his fist and struck the table so violently that chips and
coppers leaped and rolled, and Cherry closed her eyes to lose sight of
his awful grimace. Glenister looked down on him and said:
"I think I understand; but the money was yours, anyhow, so I don't
mind." His meaning was plain. The Kid suddenly jerked open the drawer
before him, but Glenister clenched his right hand and leaned forward.
The miner could have killed him with a blow, for the gambler was seated
and at his mercy. The Kid checked himself, while his face began to
twitch as though the nerves underlying it had broken bondage and were
dancing in a wild, ungovernable orgy.
"You have taught me a lesson," was all that Glenister said, and with
that he pushed through the crowd and out into the cool night air.
Overhead the arctic stars winked at him, and the sea smells struck him,
clean and fresh. As he went homeward he heard the distant,
full-throated plaint of a wolf-dog. It held the mystery and sadness of
the North. He paused, arid, baring his thick, matted head, stood for a
long time gathering himself together. Standing so, he made certain
covenants with himself, and vowed solemnly never to touch another card.
At the same moment Cherry Malotte came hurrying to her cottage door,
fleeing as though from pursuit or from some hateful, haunted spot. She
paused before entering and flung her arms outward into the dark in a
wide gesture of despair.
"Why did I do it? Oh! WHY did I do it? I can't understand myself."
CHAPTER XIV
A MIDNIGHT MESSENGER
"My dear Helen, don't you realize that my official position carries
with it a certain social obligation which it is our duty to discharge?"
"I suppose so, Uncle Arthur; but I would much rather stay at home."
"Dancing doesn't appeal to me any more. I left that sort of thing back
home. Now, if you would only come along--"
"No--I'm too busy. I must work to-night, and I'm not in a mood for such
things, anyhow."
"You're not well," his niece said. "I have noticed it for weeks. Is it
hard work or are you truly ill? You're nervous; you don't eat; you're
growing positively gaunt. Why--you're getting wrinkles like an old
man." She rose from her seat at the breakfast-table and went to him,
smoothing his silvered head with affection.
He took her cool hand and pressed it to his cheek, while the worry that
haunted him habitually of late gave way to a smile.
"It's work, little girl--hard and thankless work, that's all. This
country is intended for young men, and I'm too far along." His eyes
grew grave again, and he squeezed her fingers nervously as though at
the thought. "It's a terrible country--this--I--I--wish we had never
seen it."
"Don't say that," Helen cried, spiritedly. "Why, it's glorious. Think
of the honor. You're a United States judge and the first one to come
here. You're making history--you're building a State--people will read
about you." She stooped and kissed him; but he seemed to flinch beneath
her caress.
"Of course I'll go if you think I'd better," she said, "though I'm not
fond of Alaskan society. Some of the women are nice, but the others--"
She shrugged her dainty shoulders. "They talk scandal all the time. One
would think that a great, clean, fresh, vigorous country like this
would broaden the women as it broadens the men--but it doesn't."
"I'll tell McNamara to call for you at nine o'clock," said the Judge as
he arose. So, later in the day she prepared her long unused finery to
such good purpose that when her escort called for her that evening he
believed her the loveliest of women.
Upon their arrival at the hotel he regarded her with a fresh access of
pride, for the function proved to bear little resemblance to a
mining-camp party. The women wore handsome gowns, and every man was in
evening dress. The wide hall ran the length of the hotel and was
flanked with boxes, while its floor was like polished glass and its
walls effectively decorated.
"Oh, how lovely!" exclaimed Helen as she first caught sight of it.
"It's just like home."
"You shall be my judge and jury. I'll sign this card as often as I dare
without the certainty of violence at the hands of these young men, and
the rest of the time I'll smoke in the lobby. I don't care to dance
with any one but you."
After the first waltz he left her surrounded by partners and made his
way out of the ballroom. This was his first relaxation since landing in
the North. It was well not to become a dull boy, he mused, and as he
chewed his cigar he pictured with an odd thrill, quite unusual with
him, that slender, gray-eyed girl, with her coiled mass of hair, her
ivory shoulders, and merry smile. He saw her float past to the measure
of a two-step, and caught himself resenting the thought of another
man's enjoyment of the girl's charms even for an instant.
"Hold on, Alec," he muttered. "You're too old a bird to lose your
head." However, he was waiting for her before the time for their next
dance. She seemed to have lost a part of her gayety.
When he came for his third dance, she was more distraite than ever. As
he led her to a seat they passed a group of women, among whom were Mrs.
Champian and others whom he knew to be wives of men prominent in the
town. He had seen some of them at tea in Judge Stillman's house, and
therefore was astonished when they returned his greeting but ignored
Helen. She shrank slightly, and he realized that there was something
wrong; he could not guess what. Affairs of men he could cope with, but
the subtleties of women were out of his realm.
"I don't know what it is. I have spoken to them, but they cut me."
"Yes." Her voice trembled, but she held her head high. "It seems as
though all the women in Nome were here and in league to ignore me. It
dazes me--I do not understand."
"Come--we'll go home."
"Indeed, we will not," she said, proudly. "I shall stay and face it
out. I have done nothing to run away from, and I intend to find out
what is the matter."
"All right."
"Your wife has been entertained at Miss Chester's house. I've seen her
there. To-night she refuses to speak to the girl. She cut her dead, and
I want to know what it's about."
The other shook his head amusedly, at which McNamara flared up.
"I say you will, and you'll make your wife apologize before she leaves
this hall, too, or you'll answer to me, man to man. I won't stand to
have a girl like Miss Chester cold-decked by a bunch of mining-camp
swells, and that goes as it lies." In his excitement, McNamara reverted
to his Western idiom.
The other did not reply at once, for it is embarrassing to deal with a
person who disregards the conventions utterly, and at the same time has
the inclination and force to compel obedience. The boss's reputation
had gone abroad.
"Go on."
"There has been a lot of talk among the ladies about--well, er--the
fact is, it's that young Glenister. Mrs. Champian had the next
state-room to them--er--him--I should say--on the way up from the
States, and she saw things. Now, as far as I'm concerned, a girl can do
what she pleases, but Mrs. Champian has her own ideas of propriety.
From what my wife could learn, there's some truth in the story, too, so
you can't blame her."
With a word McNamara could have explained the gossip and made this man
put his wife right, forcing through her an elucidation of the silly
affair in such a way as to spare Helen's feelings and cover the
busy-tongued magpies with confusion. Yet he hesitated. It is a wise
skipper who trims his sails to every breeze. He thanked his informant
and left him. Entering the lobby, he saw the girl hurrying towards him.
"Yes, let us go," she panted, and when they were outside she walked so
rapidly that he had difficulty in keeping pace with her. She was
silent, and he knew better than to question, but when they arrived at
her house he entered, took off his overcoat, and turned up the light in
the tiny parlor. She flung her wraps over a chair, storming back and
forth like a little fury. Her eyes were starry with tears of anger, her
face was flushed, her hands worked nervously. He leaned against the
mantel, watching her through his cigar smoke.
"You needn't tell me," he said, at length. "I know all about it."
"I am glad you do. I never could repeat what they said. Oh, it was
brutal!" Her voice caught and she bit her lip. "What made me ask them?
Why didn't I keep still? After you left, I went to those women and
faced them. Oh, but they were brutal? Yet, why should I care?" She
stamped her slippered foot.
"I shall have to kill that man some day," he said, flecking his cigar
ashes into the grate.
"Glenister, of course. If I had thought the story would ever reach you,
I'd have shut him up long ago."
"It didn't come from him," she cried, hot with indignation. "He's a
gentleman. It's that cat, Mrs. Champian."
He shrugged his shoulders the slightest bit, but it was eloquent, and
she noted it. "Oh, I don't mean that he did it intentionally--he's too
decent a chap for that--but anybody's tongue will wag to a beautiful
girl! My lady Malotte is a jealous trick."
He seemed surprised. "I thought every one knew who she is. It's just as
well that you don't."
"I am sure Mr. Glenister would not talk of me." There was a pause. "Who
is Miss Malotte?"
He studied for a moment, while she watched him. What a splendid figure
he made in his evening clothes! The cosey room with its shaded lights
enhanced his size and strength and rugged outlines. In his eyes was
that admiration which women live for. He lifted his bold, handsome face
and met her gaze.
"I had rather leave that for you to find out, for I'm not much at
scandal. I have something more important to tell you. It's the most
important thing I have ever said to you, Helen." It was the first time
he had used that name, and she began to tremble, while her eyes sought
the door in a panic. She had expected this moment, and yet was not
ready.
"Yes, this is a good time. If you can't answer, I'll come back
to-morrow. I want you to be my wife. I want to give you everything the
world offers, and I want to make you happy, girl. There'll be no gossip
hereafter--I'll shield you from everything unpleasant, and if there is
anything you want in life, I'll lay it at your feet. I can do it." He
lifted his massive arms, and in the set of his strong, square face was
the promise that she should have whatever she craved if mortal man
could give it to her--love, protection, position, adoration.
She stammered uncertainly till the humiliation and chagrin she had
suffered this night swept over her again. This town--this crude,
half-born mining-camp--had turned against her, misjudged her cruelly.
The women were envious, clacking scandal-mongers, all of them, who
would ostracize her and make her life in the Northland a misery, make
her an outcast with nothing to sustain her but her own solitary pride.
She could picture her future clearly, pitilessly, and see herself
standing alone, vilified, harassed in a thousand cutting ways, yet
unable to run away, or to explain. She would have to stay and face it,
for her life was bound up here during the next few years or so, or as
long as her uncle remained a judge. This man would free her. He loved
her; he offered her everything. He was bigger than all the rest
combined. They were his playthings, and they knew it. She was not sure
that she loved him, but his magnetism was overpowering, and her
admiration intense. No other man she had ever known compared with him,
except Glenister--Bah! The beast! He had insulted her at first; he
wronged her now.
She dropped her head, and he strode forward to take her in his arms,
then stopped, listening. Some one ran up on the porch and hammered
loudly at the door. McNamara scowled, walked into the hall, and flung
the portal open, disclosing Struve.
"Hello, McNamara! Been looking all over for you. There's the deuce to
pay!" Helen sighed with relief and gathered up her cloak, while the hum
of their voices reached her indistinctly. She was given plenty of time
to regain her composure before they appeared. When they did, the
politician spoke, sourly:
"You bet! It may be too late now. The news came an hour ago, but I
couldn't find you," said Struve. "Your horse is saddled at the office.
Better not wait to change your clothes."
"You say Voorhees has gone with twenty deputies, eh? That's good. You
stay here and find out all you can."
"I telephoned out to the Creek for the boys to arm themselves and throw
out pickets. If you hurry you can get there in time. It's only midnight
now."
"What is the trouble?" Miss Chester inquired, anxiously.
"That's just why I MUST go," said McNamara. "I'll come back in the
morning, though, and I'd like to see you alone. Good-night!" There was
a strange, new light in his eyes as he left her. For one unversed in
woman's ways he played the game surprisingly well, and as he hurried
towards his office he smiled grimly into the darkness.
Helen questioned Struve at length, but gained nothing more than that
secret-service men had been at work for weeks and had to-day unearthed
the fact that Vigilantes had been formed. They had heard enough to make
them think the mines would be jumped again to-night, and so had given
the alarm.
"Sure. We had to. The other people shadowed us, and it's come to a
point where it's life or death to one side or the other. I told
McNamara we'd have bloodshed before we were through, when he first
outlined the scheme--I mean when the trouble began."
She wrung her hands. "That's what uncle feared before we left Seattle.
That's why I took the risks I did in bringing you those papers. I
thought you got them in time to avoid all this."
"No, we don't let him know anything more than necessary; he's not a
strong man."
"Yes, yes. He's not well." Again the lawyer smiled. "Who is behind this
Vigilante movement?"
"We think it is Glenister and his New Mexican bandit partner. At least
they got the crowd together." She was silent for a time.
"Undoubtedly."
"But they don't, do they?" Somehow this question had recurred to her
insistently of late, for things were constantly happening which showed
there was more back of this great, fierce struggle than she knew. It
was impossible that injustice had been done the mine-owners, and yet
scattered talk reached her which was puzzling. When she strove to
follow it up, her acquaintances adroitly changed the subject. She was
baffled on every side. The three local newspapers upheld the court. She
read them carefully, and was more at sea than ever. There was a
disturbing undercurrent of alarm and unrest that caused her to feel
insecure, as though standing on hollow ground.
"Yes, this whole disturbance is caused by those two. Only for them we'd
be all right."
He answered, promptly: "The handsomest woman in the North, and the most
dangerous."
"It's hard to say who or what she is--she's different from other women.
She came to Dawson in the early days--just came--we didn't know how,
whence, or why, and we never found out. We woke up one morning and
there she was. By night we were all jealous, and in a week we were most
of us drivelling idiots. It might have been the mystery or, perhaps,
the competition. That was the day when a dance-hall girl could make a
homestake in a winter or marry a millionaire in a month, but she never
bothered. She toiled not, neither did she spin on the waxed floors, yet
Solomon in all his glory would have looked like a tramp beside her."
"Well, there was the young nobleman, in the winter of '98, Dane, I
think--fine family and all that--big, yellow-haired boy. He wanted to
marry her, but a faro-dealer shot him. Then there was Rock, of the
mounted police, the finest officer in the service. He was cashiered.
She knew he was going to pot for her, but she didn't seem to care--and
there were others. Yet, with it all, she is the most generous person
and the most tender-hearted. Why, she has fed every 'stew bum' on the
Yukon, and there isn't a busted prospector in the country who wouldn't
swear by her, for she has grubstaked dozens of them. I was horribly in
love with her myself. Yes, she's dangerous, all right--to everybody but
Glenister."
"She had been across the Yukon to nurse a man with scurvy, and coming
back she was caught in the spring break-up. I wasn't there, but it
seems this Glenister got her ashore somehow when nobody else would
tackle the job. They were carried five miles down-stream in the
ice-pack before he succeeded."
"And he worshipped her as madly as all the rest of you, I suppose," she
said, scornfully.
"That's the peculiar part. She hypnotized him at first, but he ran
away, and I didn't hear of him again till I came to Nome. She followed
him, finally, and last week evened up her score. She paid him back for
saving her."
"There's where you're wrong," Struve chuckled. "He's never been known
to bet before."
"Those things are a part of every new country. They were about all we
had till this year. But it is women like you that we fellows need, Miss
Helen. You can help us a lot." She did not like the way he was looking
at her, and remembered that her uncle was up-stairs and asleep.
"I must ask you to excuse me now, for it's late and I am very tired."
The clock showed half-past twelve, so, after letting him out, she
extinguished the light and dragged herself wearily up to her room. She
removed her outer garments and threw over her bare shoulders a negligee
of many flounces and bewildering, clinging looseness. As she took down
her heavy braids, the story of Cherry Malotte returned to her
tormentingly. So Glenister had saved HER life also at risk of his own.
What a very gallant cavalier he was, to be sure! He should bear a coat
of arms--a dragon, an armed knight, and a fainting maiden. "I succor
ladies in distress--handsome ones," should be the motto on his shield.
"The handsomest woman in the North," Struve had said. She raised her
eyes to the glass and made a mouth at the petulant, tired reflection
there. She pictured Glenister leaping from floe to floe with the hungry
river surging and snapping at his feet, while the cheers of the crowd
on shore gave heart to the girl crouching out there. She could see him
snatch her up and fight his way back to safety over the plunging
ice-cakes with death dragging at his heels. What a strong embrace he
had! At this she blushed and realized with a shock that while she was
mooning that very man might be fighting hand to hand in the darkness of
a mountain-gorge with the man she was going to marry.
A moment later some one mounted the front steps below and knocked
sharply. Truly this was a night of alarms. Would people never cease
coming? She was worn out, but at the thought of the tragedy abroad and
the sick old man sleeping near by, she lit a candle and slipped
down-stairs to avoid disturbing him. Doubtless it was some message from
McNamara, she thought, as she unchained the door.
As she opened it, she fell back amazed while it swung wide and the
candle flame flickered and sputtered in the night air. Roy Glenister
stood there, grim and determined, his soft, white Stetson pulled low,
his trousers tucked into tan half-boots, in his hand a Winchester
rifle. Beneath his corduroy coat she saw a loose cartridge-belt, yellow
with shells, and the nickelled flash of a revolver. Without invitation
he strode across the threshold, closing the door behind him.
"Miss Chester, you and the Judge must dress quickly and come with me."
"The Vigilantes are on their way here to hang him. Come with me to my
house where I can protect you."
She laid a trembling hand on her bosom and the color died out of her
face, then at a slight noise above they both looked up to see Judge
Stillman leaning far over the banister. He had wrapped himself in a
dressing-gown and now gripped the rail convulsively, while his features
were blanched to the color of putty and his eyes were wide with terror,
though puffed and swollen from sleep. His lips moved in a vain endeavor
to speak.
CHAPTER XV
VIGILANTES
On the morning after the episode in the Northern, Glenister awoke under
a weight of discouragement and desolation. The past twenty-four hours
with their manifold experiences seemed distant and unreal. At breakfast
he was ashamed to tell Dextry of the gambling debauch, for he had dealt
treacherously with the old man in risking half of the mine, even though
they had agreed that either might do as he chose with his interest,
regardless of the other. It all seemed like a nightmare, those tense
moments when he lay above the receiver's office and felt his belief in
the one woman slipping away, the frenzied thirst which Cherry Malotte
had checked, the senseless, unreasoning lust for play that possessed
him later. This lapse was the last stand of his old, untamed instincts.
The embers of revolt in him were dead. He felt that he would never
again lose mastery of himself, that his passions would never best him
hereafter.
"They talked of ejectin' the receiver's men and puttin' all us fellers
back on our mines."
"About sixty. We've kept the number down, and only taken men with so
much property that they'll have to keep their mouths shut."
"I wish we might engineer some kind of an encounter with the court
crowd and create such an uproar that it would reach Washington.
Everything else has failed, and our last chance seems to be for the
government to step in; that is, unless Bill Wheaton can do something
with the California courts."
"I don't count on him. McNamara don't care for California courts no
more 'n he would for a boy with a pea-shooter--he's got too much pull
at headquarters. If the 'Stranglers' don't do no good, we'd better go
in an' clean out the bunch like we was killin' snakes. If that fails,
I'm goin' out to the States an' be a doctor."
"I read somewhere that in the United States every year there is forty
million gallons of whiskey used for medical purposes."
The old man shook his head. "You're mistaken. It ain't hard for me."
It was some time later that one of the detectives employed by the
Swedes met Glenister on Front Street, and by an almost imperceptible
sign signified his desire to speak with him. When they were alone he
said:
"The district-attorney has put on some new men. I've fixed the woman
who rooms next to him, and through her I've got a line on some of them,
but I haven't spotted them all. They're bad ones--'up-river' men
mostly--remnants of Soapy Smith's Skagway gang. They won't stop at
anything."
A few nights after, Glenister had reason to recall the words of the
sleuth and to realize that the game was growing close and desperate. To
reach his cabin, which sat on the outskirts of the town, he ordinarily
followed one of the plank walks which wound through the confusion of
tents, warehouses, and cottages lying back of the two principal streets
along the water front. This part of the city was not laid out in
rectangular blocks, for in the early rush the first-comers had seized
whatever pieces of ground they found vacant and erected thereon some
kind of buildings to make good their titles. There resulted a formless
jumble of huts, cabins, and sheds, penetrated by no cross streets and
quite unlighted. At night, one leaving the illuminated portion of the
town found this darkness intensified.
His assailant leaped out from his hiding-place and ran down the walk,
the sound of his quick, soft footfalls thudding faintly out into the
silence. The young man felt no pain, however, so scrambled to his feet,
felt himself over with care, and then swore roundly. He was untouched;
the other had missed him cleanly. The report, coming while he was in
the act of leaping, had startled him so that he had lost his balance,
slipped upon the wet boards, and fallen. His assailant was lost in the
darkness before he could rise. Pursuit was out of the question, so he
continued homeward, considerably shaken, and related the incident to
Dextry.
"You think it was some of McNamara's work, eh?" Dextry inquired when he
had finished.
Dextry shook his head. "It don't seem like the game is that far along
yet. The time is coming when we'll go to the mat with them people, but
they've got the aige on us now, so what could they gain by putting you
away? I don't believe it's them, but whoever it is, you'd better be
careful or you'll be got."
"Suppose we come home together after this," Roy suggested, and they
arranged to do so, realizing that danger lurked in the dark corners and
that it was in some such lonely spot that the deed would be tried
again. They experienced no trouble for a time, though on nearing their
cabin one night the younger man fancied that he saw a shadow glide away
from its vicinity and out into the blackness of the tundra, as though
some one had stood at his very door waiting for him, then became
frightened at the two figures approaching. Dextry had not observed it,
however, and Glenister was not positive himself, but it served to give
him the uncanny feeling that some determined, unscrupulous force was
bent on his destruction. He determined to go nowhere unarmed.
A few evenings later he went home early and was busied in writing when
Dextry came in about ten o'clock. The old miner hung up his coat before
speaking, lit a cigarette, inhaled deeply, then, amid mouthfuls of
smoke, began:
"I had my own toes over the edge to-night. I was mistook for you, which
compliment I don't aim to have repeated."
"We're about the same height an' these hats of ours are alike. Just as
I come by that lumber-pile down yonder, a man hopped out an throwed a
'gat' under my nose. He was quicker than light, and near blowed my
skelp into the next block before he saw who I was; then he dropped his
weepon and said:
"Sure. Guess."
"I can't."
"He ain't after nobody else, an', take my word for it, it's got nothin'
to do with McNamara nor that gamblin' row. He's too game for that.
There's some other reason."
This was the first mention Dextry had made of the night at the Northern.
"I don't know why he should have it in for me--I never did him any
favors," Glenister remarked, cynically.
"Well, you watch out, anyhow. I'd sooner face McNamara an' all the
crooks he can hire than that gambler."
During the next few days Roy undertook to meet the proprietor of the
Northern face to face, but the Kid had vanished completely from his
haunts. He was not in his gambling-hall at night nor on the street by
day. The young man was still looking for him on the evening of the
dance at the hotel, when he chanced to meet one of the Vigilantes, who
inquired of him:
"What meeting?"
Together they crossed the river to the less frequented part of town and
knocked at the door of a large, unlighted warehouse, flanked by a high
board fence. The building faced the street, but was enclosed on the
other three sides by this ten-foot wall, inside of which were stored
large quantities of coal and lumber. After some delay they were
admitted, and, passing down through the dim-lit, high-banked lanes of
merchandise, came to the rear room, where they were admitted again.
This compartment had been fitted up for the warm storage of perishable
goods during the cold weather, and, being without windows, made an
ideal place for clandestine gatherings.
"We will assemble here quietly with our arms at one o'clock. And let me
caution you again not to talk or do anything to scare the birds away."
Glenister arose. "I came late, Mr. Chairman, so I missed hearing your
plan. I gather that you're out for business, however, and I want to be
in it. May I ask what is on foot?"
"Certainly. Things have reached such a pass that moderate means are
useless. We have decided to act, and act quickly. We have exhausted
every legal resource and now we're going to stamp out this gang of
robbers in our own way. We will get together in an hour, divide into
three groups of twenty men, each with a leader, then go to the houses
of McNamara, Stillman, and Voorhees, take them prisoners, and--" He
waved his hand in a large gesture.
Glenister made no answer for a moment, while the crowd watched him
intently.
"My friends, when I stepped into this room just now I felt that I
wasn't wanted. Why, I don't know, because I have had more to do with
organizing this movement than any of you, and because I have suffered
just as much as the rest. I want to know if I was omitted from this
meeting intentionally."
"We don't question your loyalty, Mr. Glenister, but we didn't ask you
to this meeting because we know your attitude--perhaps I'd better say
sentiment--regarding Judge Stillman's niece--er--family. It has come to
us from various sources that you have been affected to the prejudice of
your own and your partner's interest. Now, there isn't going to be any
sentiment in the affairs of the Vigilantes. We are going to do justice,
and we thought the simplest way was to ignore you in this matter and
spare all discussion and hard feeling in every quarter."
"It's a lie!" shouted the young man, hoarsely. "A damned lie! You
wouldn't let me in for fear I'd kick, eh? Well, you were right. I will
kick. You've hinted about my feelings for Miss Chester. Let me tell you
that she is engaged to marry McNamara, and that she's nothing to me.
Now, then, let me tell you, further, that you won't break into her
house and hang her uncle, even if he is a reprobate. No, sir! This
isn't the time for violence of that sort--we'll win without it. If we
can't, let's fight like men, and not hunt in a pack like wolves. If you
want to do something, put us back on our mines and help us hold them,
but, for God's sake, don't descend to assassination and the tactics of
the Mafia!"
"We knew you would make that kind of a talk," said the speaker, while
the rest murmured grudgingly. One of them spoke up.
"We've talked this over in cold blood, Glenister, and it's a question
of their lives or our liberty. The law don't enter into it."
"That's right," echoed another at his elbow. "We can't seize the
claims, because McNamara's got soldiers to back him up. They'd shoot us
down. You ought to be the last one to object."
"I don't deny that McNamara deserves lynching, but Stillman doesn't.
He's a weak old man"--some one laughed derisively--"and there's a woman
in the house. He's all she has in the world to depend upon, and you
would have to kill her to get at him. If you MUST follow this course,
take the others, but leave him alone."
They only shook their heads, while several pushed by him even as he
spoke. "We're going to distribute our favors equal," said a man as he
left. They were actuated by what they called justice, and he could not
sway them. The life and welfare of the North were in their hands, as
they thought, and there was not one to hesitate. Glenister implored the
chairman, but the man answered him:
"It's too late for further discussion, and let me remind you of your
promise. You're bound by every obligation that exists for an honorable
man--"
"Oh, don't think that I'll give the snap away!" said the other; "but I
warn you again not to enter Stillman's house."
He followed out into the night to find that Dextry had disappeared,
evidently wishing to avoid argument. Roy had seen signs of unrest
beneath the prospector's restraint during the past few days, and
indications of a fierce hunger to vent his spleen on the men who had
robbed him of his most sacred rights. He was of an intolerant,
vindictive nature that would go to any length for vengeance.
Retribution was part of his creed.
On his way home, the young man looked at his watch, to find that he had
but an hour to determine his course. Instinct prompted him to join his
friends and to even the score with the men who had injured him so
bitterly, for, measured by standards of the frontier, they were pirates
with their lives forfeit. Yet, he could not countenance this step. If
only the Vigilantes would be content with making an example--but he
knew they would not. The blood hunger of a mob is easy to whet and hard
to hold. McNamara would resist, as would Voorhees and the
district-attorney, then there would be bloodshed, riot, chaos. The
soldiers would be called out and martial law declared, the streets
would become skirmish-grounds. The Vigilantes would rout them without
question, for every citizen of the North would rally to their aid, and
such men could not be stopped. The Judge would go down with the rest of
the ring, and what would happen to--her?
He took down his Winchester, oiled and cleaned it, then buckled on a
belt of cartridges. Still he wrestled with himself. He felt that he was
being ground between his loyalty to the Vigilantes and his own
conscience. The girl was one of the gang, he reasoned--she had schemed
with them to betray him through his love, and she was pledged to the
one man in the world whom he hated with fanatical fury. Why should he
think of her in this hour? Six months back he would have looked with
jealous eyes upon the right to lead the Vigilantes, but this change
that had mastered him--what was it? Not cowardice, nor caution. No.
Yet, being intangible, it was none the less marked, as his friends had
shown him an hour since.
The girl's hair lay upon her neck and shoulders in tumbled brown
masses, while her breast heaved tumultuously at the sudden, grim sight
of him. She stepped back against the wall, her wondrous, deep, gray
eyes wide and troubled, the blush of modesty struggling with the pallor
of dismay.
The picture pained him like a knife-thrust. This girl was for his
bitterest enemy--no hope of her was for him. He forgot for a moment
that she was false and plotting, then, recalling it, spoke as roughly
as he might and stated his errand. Then the old man had appeared on the
stairs above, speechless with fright at what he overheard. It was
evident that his nerves, so sorely strained by the events of the past
week, were now snapped utterly. A human soul naked and panic-stricken
is no pleasant sight, so Glenister dropped his eyes and addressed the
girl again:
"Don't take anything with you. Just dress and come with me."
"The people of Nome are up in arms, and I've come to save you. Don't
stop to argue." He spoke impatiently.
"Uncle Arthur!" exclaimed the girl, sharply. Her eyes met Glenister's
and begged him to take no offence.
"I don't understand this atrocity. They must be mad!" wailed the Judge.
"You run over to the jail, Mr. Glenister, and tell Voorhees to hurry
guards here to protect me. Helen, 'phone to the military post and give
the alarm. Tell them the soldiers must come at once."
"Hold on!" said Glenister. "There's no use of doing that--the wires are
cut; and I won't notify Voorhees--he can take care of himself. I came
to help you, and if you want to escape you'll stop talking and hurry
up."
"I don't know what to do," said Stillman, torn by terror and
indecision. "You wouldn't hurt an old man, would you? Wait! I'll be
down in a minute."
"Stop, Uncle Arthur! You mustn't RUN AWAY." She stood erect and
determined, "You wouldn't do THAT, would you? This is our house. You
represent the law and the dignity of the government. You mustn't fear a
mob of ruffians. We will stay here and meet them, of course."
"Thank you for your good intentions," she said, "but we have done
nothing to run away from. We will get ready to meet these cowards. You
had better go or they will find you here."
She moved up the stairs, and, taking the Judge by the arm, led him with
her. Of a sudden she had assumed control of the situation
unfalteringly, and both men felt the impossibility of thwarting her.
Pausing at the top, she turned and looked down.
"We are grateful for your efforts just the same. Good-night."
"Oh, I'm not going," said the young man. "If you stick I'll do the
same." He made the rounds of the first-floor rooms, locking doors and
windows. As a place of defence it was hopeless, and he saw that he
would have to make his stand up-stairs. When sufficient time had
elapsed he called up to Helen:
"May I come?"
"Won't you come with me--it's our last chance?" She only shook her
head. "Well, then, put out the light. I'll stand at that front window,
and when my eyes get used to the darkness I'll be able to see them
before they reach the gate."
She did as directed, taking her place beside him at the opening, while
the Judge crept in and sat upon the bed, his heavy breathing the only
sound in the room. The two young people stood so close beside each
other that the sweet scent of her person awoke in him an almost
irresistible longing. He forgot her treachery again, forgot that she
was another's, forgot all save that he loved her truly and purely, with
a love which was like an agony to him. Her shoulder brushed his arm; he
heard the soft rustling of her garment at her breast as she breathed.
Some one passed in the street, and she laid a hand upon him fearfully.
It was very cold, very tiny, and very soft, but he made no move to take
it. The moments dragged along, still, tense, interminable. Occasionally
she leaned towards him, and he stooped to catch her whispered words. At
such times her breath beat warm against his cheek, and he closed his
teeth stubbornly. Out in the night a wolfdog saddened the air, then
came the sound of others wrangling and snarling in a near-by corral.
This is a chickless land and no cock-crow breaks the midnight peace.
The suspense enhanced the Judge's perturbation till his chattering
teeth sounded like castanets. Now and then he groaned.
The watchers had lost track of time when their strained eyes detected
dark blots materializing out of the shadows.
"There they come," whispered Glenister, forcing her back from the
aperture; but she would not be denied, and returned to his side.
As the foremost figures reached the gate, Roy leaned forth and spoke,
not loudly, but in tones that sliced through the silence, sharp, clean,
and without warning.
"Halt! Don't come inside the fence." There was an instant's confusion;
then, before the men beneath had time to answer or take action, he
continued: "This is Roy Glenister talking. I told you not to molest
these people and I warn you again. We're ready for you."
"Miss Chester is safe. All we want is the Judge. We won't hang him, not
if he'll wear this suit we brought along. He needn't be afraid. Tar is
good for the skin."
Suddenly a man came running down the planked pavement and into the
group.
"McNamara's gone, and so's the marshal and the rest," he panted. There
was a moment's silence, and then the leader growled to his men,
"Scatter out and rush the house, boys." He raised his voice to the man
in the window. "This is your work--you damned turncoat." His followers
melted away to right and left, vaulted the fence, and dodged into the
shelter of the walls. The click, click of Glenister's Winchester
sounded through the room while the sweat stood out on him. He wondered
if he could do this deed, if he could really fire on these people. He
wondered if his muscles would not wither and paralyze before they
obeyed his command.
Helen crowded past him and, leaning half out of the opening, called
loudly, her voice ringing clear and true:
There were uncertain mutterings below till a new man raised his voice.
Both Roy and Helen recognised Dextry.
"We won't hurt you this time, Judge, but you've gone far enough. We'll
give you another chance, then, if you don't make good, we'll stretch
you to a lamp-post. Take this as a warning."
The men disappeared into the darkness, and when they had gone Glenister
closed the window, pulled down the shades, and lighted a lamp. He knew
by how narrow a margin a tragedy had been averted. If he had fired on
these men his shot would have kindled a feud which would have consumed
every vestige of the court crowd and himself among them. He would have
fallen under a false banner, and his life would not have reached to the
next sunset. Perhaps it was forfeit now--he could not tell. The
Vigilantes would probably look upon his part as traitorous; and, at the
very least, he had cut himself off from their support, the only support
the Northland offered him. Henceforth he was a renegade, a pariah,
hated alike by both factions. He purposely avoided sight of Stillman
and turned his back when the Judge extended his hand with expressions
of gratitude. His work was done and he wished to leave this house.
Helen followed him down to the door and, as he opened it, laid her hand
upon his sleeve.
"Words are feeble things, and I can never make amends for all you've
done for us."
"For US!" cried Roy, with a break in his voice. "Do you think I
sacrificed my honor, betrayed my friends, killed my last hope,
ostracized myself, for 'US'? This is the last time I'll trouble you.
Perhaps the last time I'll see you. No matter what else you've done,
however, you've taught me a lesson, and I thank you for it. I have
found myself at last. I'm not an Eskimo any longer--I'm a man!"
"You've always been that," she said. "I don't understand as much about
this affair as I want to, and it seems to me that no one will explain
it. I'm very stupid, I guess; but won't you come back to-morrow and
tell it to me?"
"No," he said, roughly. "You're not of my people. McNamara and his are
no friends of mine, and I'm no friend of theirs." He was half down the
steps before she said, softly:
She returned to the Judge, who was in a pitiable state, and for a long
time she labored to soothe him as though he were a child. She undertook
to question him about the things which lay uppermost in her mind and
which this night had half revealed, but he became fretful and irritated
at the mention of mines and mining. She sat beside his bed till he
dozed off, puzzling to discover what lay behind the hints she had
heard, till her brain and body matched in absolute weariness. The
reflex of the day's excitement sapped her strength till she could
barely creep to her own couch, where she rolled and sighed--too tired
to sleep at once. She awoke finally, with one last nervous flicker,
before complete oblivion took her. A sentence was on her mind--it
almost seemed as though she had spoken it aloud:
CHAPTER XVI
It was nearly noon of the next day when Helen awoke to find that
McNamara had ridden in from the Creek and stopped for breakfast with
the Judge. He had asked for her, but on hearing the tale of the night's
adventure would not allow her to be disturbed. Later, he and the Judge
had gone away together.
Although her judgment approved the step she had contemplated the night
before, still the girl now felt a strange reluctance to meet McNamara.
It is true that she knew no ill of him, except that implied in the
accusations of certain embittered men; and she was aware that every
strong and aggressive character makes enemies in direct proportionate
the qualities which lend him greatness. Nevertheless, she was aware of
an inner conflict that she had not foreseen. This man who so
confidently believed that she would marry him did not dominate her
consciousness.
She had ridden much of late, taking long, solitary gallops beside the
shimmering sea that she loved so well, or up the winding valleys into
the foot-hills where echoed the roar of swift waters or glinted the
flash of shovel blades. This morning her horse was lame, so she
determined to walk. In her early rambles she had looked timidly askance
at the rough men she met till she discovered their genuine respect and
courtesy. The most unkempt among them were often college-bred,
although, for that matter, the roughest of the miners showed abundant
consideration for a woman. So she was glad to allow the men to talk to
her with the fine freedom inspired by the new country and its wide
spaces. The wilderness breeds a chivalry all its own.
Thus there seemed to be no danger abroad, though they had told the girl
of mad dogs which roamed the city, explaining that the hot weather
affects powerfully the thick-coated, shaggy "malamoots." This is the
land of the dog, and whereas in winter his lot is to labor and shiver
and starve, in summer he loafs, fights, grows fat, and runs mad with
the heat.
Helen walked far and, returning, chose an unfamiliar course through the
outskirts of the town to avoid meeting any of the women she knew,
because of that vivid memory of the night before. As she walked swiftly
along she thought that she heard faint cries far behind her. Looking
up, she noted that it was a lonely, barren quarter and that the only
figure in sight was a woman some distance away. A few paces farther on
the shouts recurred--more plainly this time, and a gunshot sounded.
Glancing back, she saw several men running, one bearing a smoking
revolver, and heard, nearer still, the snarling hubbub of fighting
dogs. In a flash the girl's curiosity became horror, for, as she
watched, one of the dogs made a sudden dash through the now subdued
group of animals and ran swiftly along the planking on which she stood.
It was a handsome specimen of the Eskimo malamoot--tall, gray, and
coated like a wolf, with the speed, strength, and cunning of its
cousin. Its head hung low and swung from side to side as it trotted,
the motion flecking foam and slaver. The creature had scattered the
pack, and now, swift, menacing, relentless, was coming towards Helen.
There was no shelter near, no fence, no house, save the distant one
towards which the other woman was making her way. The men, too far away
to protect her, shouted hoarse warnings.
Helen did not scream nor hesitate--she turned and ran, terror-stricken,
towards the distant cottage. She was blind with fright and felt an
utter certainty that the dog would attack her before she could reach
safety. Yes--there was the quick patter of his pads close up behind
her; her knees weakened; the sheltering door was yet some yards away.
But a horse, tethered near the walk, reared and snorted as the flying
pair drew near. The mad creature swerved, leaped at the horse's legs,
and snapped in fury. Badly frightened at this attack, the horse lunged
at his halter, broke it, and galloped away; but the delay had served
for Helen, weak and faint, to reach the door. She wrenched at the knob.
It was locked. As she turned hopelessly away, she saw that the other
woman was directly behind her, and was, in her turn, awaiting the mad
animal's onslaught, but calmly, a tiny revolver in her hand.
"Shoot!" screamed Helen. "Why don't you shoot?" The little gun spoke,
and the dog spun around, snarling and yelping. The woman fired several
times more before it lay still, and then remarked, calmly, as she
"broke" the weapon and ejected the shells:
"How well you shoot!" she gasped. Her eyes were on the gray bundle
whose death agonies had thrust it almost to her feet. The men had run
up and were talking excitedly, but after a word with them the woman
turned to Helen.
"You must come in for a moment and recover yourself," she said, and led
her inside.
"That is the third mad dog I have seen this month. Hydrophobia is
becoming a habit in this neighborhood." She returned, bearing a tiny
silver tray with decanter and glasses.
"You're all unstrung, but this brandy will help you--if you don't
object to a swallow of it. Then come right in here and lie down for a
moment and you'll be all right." She spoke with such genuine kindness
and sympathy that Helen flashed a grateful glance at her. She was tall,
slender, and with a peculiar undulating suggestion in her movements, as
though she had been bred to the clinging folds of silken garments.
Helen watched the charm of her smile, the friendly solicitude of her
expression, and felt her heart warm towards this one kind woman in Nome.
"You're very good," she answered; "but I'm all right now. I was badly
frightened. It was wonderful, your saving me." She followed the other's
graceful motion as she placed her burden on the table, and in doing so
gazed squarely at a photograph of Roy Glenister.
"Oh--!" Helen exclaimed, then paused as it flashed over her who this
girl was. She looked at her quickly. Yes, probably men would consider
the woman beautiful, with that smile. The revelation came with a shock,
and she arose, trying to mask her confusion.
"Thank you so much for your kindness. I'm quite myself now and I must
go."
Her change of face could not escape the quick perceptions of one
schooled by experience in the slights of her sex. Times without number
Cherry Malotte had marked that subtle, scornful change in other women,
and reviled herself for heeding it. But in some way this girl's manner
hurt her worst of all. She betrayed no sign, however, save a widening
of the eyes and a certain fixity of smile as she answered:
"I wish you would stay until you are rested, Miss--" She paused with
out-stretched hand.
Cherry Malotte withdrew her proffered hand and her face grew hard and
hateful.
"Oh! So you are Miss Chester--and I--saved you!" She laughed harshly.
Helen strove for calmness. "I'm sorry you feel that way," she said,
coolly. "I appreciate your service to me." She moved towards the door.
"Oh yes, you do! Don't assume such innocence. Of course it's your role,
but you can't play it with me." She stepped in front of her visitor,
placing her back against the door, while her face was bitter and
mocking. "The little service I did you just now entitles me to a
privilege, I suppose, and I'm going to take advantage of it to tell you
how badly your mask fits. Dreadfully rude of me, isn't it? You're in
with a fine lot of crooks, and I admire the way you've done your share
of the dirty work, but when you assume these scandalized, supervirtuous
airs it offends me."
"Let me out!"
"I've done bad things," Cherry continued, unheedingly, "but I was
forced into them, usually, and I never, deliberately, tried to wreck a
man's life just for his money."
"What do you mean by saying that I have betrayed my friends and wrecked
anybody's life?" Helen demanded, hotly.
"Bah! I had you sized up at the start, but Roy couldn't see it. Then
Struve told me what I hadn't guessed. A bottle of wine, a woman, and
that fool will tell all he knows. It's a great game McNamara's playing
and he did well to get you in on it, for you're clever, your nerve is
good, and your make-up is great for the part. I ought to know, for I've
turned a few tricks myself. You'll pardon this little burst of
feeling--professional pique. I'm jealous of your ability, that's all.
However, now that you realize we're in the same class, don't look down
on me hereafter." She opened the door and bowed her guest out with
elaborate mockery.
Helen was too bewildered and humiliated to make much out of this
vicious and incoherent attack except the fact that Cherry Malotte
accused her of a part in this conspiracy which every one seemed to
believe existed. Here again was that hint of corruption which she
encountered on all sides. This might be merely a woman's jealousy--and
yet she said Struve had told her all about it--that a bottle of wine
and a pretty face would make the lawyer disclose everything. She could
believe it from what she knew and had heard of him. The feeling that
she was groping in the dark, that she was wrapped in a mysterious woof
of secrecy, came over her again as it had so often of late. If Struve
talked to that other woman, why wouldn't he talk to her? She paused,
changing her direction towards Front Street, revolving rapidly in her
mind as she went her course of action. Cherry Malotte believed her to
be an actress. Very well--she would prove her judgment right.
She found Struve busy in his private office, but he leaped to his feet
on her entrance and came forward, offering her a chair.
"Good-morning, Miss Helen. You have a fine color, considering the night
you passed. The Judge told me all about the affair; and let me state
that you're the pluckiest girl I know."
She smiled grimly at the thought of what made her cheeks glow, and
languidly loosened the buttons of her jacket.
"I suppose you're very busy, you lawyer man?" she inquired.
"Oh, I didn't come on business," she said, lightly. "I was out walking
and merely sauntered in."
"Yes, I get tired of talking to uncle and Mr. McNamara. They treat me
as though I were a little girl."
He felt his throat gingerly at the thought, but his eyes brightened
when she answered, lightly:
For some time she led him on adroitly, talking of many things, in a way
to make him wonder at her new and flippant humor. He had never dreamed
she could be like this, so tantalizingly close to familiarity, and yet
so maddeningly aloof and distant. He grew bolder in his speech.
"How are things going with us?" she questioned, as his warmth grew
pronounced. "Uncle won't talk and Mr. McNamara is as close-mouthed as
can be, lately."
She summoned up her courage and walked past the ragged edge of
uncertainty.
"Now, don't you try to keep me in short dresses, too. It's getting
wearisome. I've done my part and I want to know what the rest of you
are doing." She was prepared for any answer.
"Everything. Don't you think I can hear what people are saying?"
"Oh, that's it! Well, don't you pay any attention to what people say."
"You're just like the others, aren't you? You won't give me any
satisfaction at all."
"Give, give, give," said Struve, cynically. "That's always the woman's
cry. Give me this--give me that. Selfish sex! Why don't you offer
something in return? Men are traders, women usurers. You are curious,
hence miserable. I can help you, therefore I should, do it for a smile.
You ask me to break my promises and risk my honor on your caprice.
Well, that's woman-like, and I'll do it. I'll put myself in your power,
but I won't do it gratis. No, we'll trade."
"It isn't curiosity," she denied, indignantly. "It is my due."
"No; you've heard the common talk and grown suspicious, that's all. You
think I know something that will throw a new light or a new shadow on
everything you have in the world, and you're worked up to such a
condition that you can't take your own people's word; and, on the other
hand, you can't go to strangers, so you come to me. Suppose I told you
I had the papers you brought to me last spring in that safe and that
they told the whole story--whether your uncle is unimpeachable or
whether he deserved hanging by that mob. What would you do, eh? What
would you give to see them? Well, they're there and ready to speak for
themselves. If you're a woman you won't rest till you've seen them.
Will you trade?"
"Yes, yes! Give them to me," she cried, eagerly, at which a wave of
crimson rushed up to his eyes and he rose abruptly from his chair. He
made towards her, but she retreated to the wall, pale and wide-eyed.
He paused. "Of course I can, but I want a kiss to bind the bargain--to
apply on account." He reached for her hand with his own hot one, but
she pushed him away and slipped past him towards the door.
"Suit yourself," said he, "but if I'm not mistaken, you'll never rest
till you've seen those papers. I've studied you, and I'll place a bet
that you can't marry McNamara nor look your uncle in the eye till you
know the truth. You might do either if you KNEW them to be crooks, but
you couldn't if you only suspected it--that's the woman. When you get
ready, come back; I'll show you proof, because I don't claim to be
anything but what I am--Wilton Struve, bargainer of some mean ability.
When they come to inscribe my headstone I hope they can carve thereon
with truth, 'He got value received.'"
As she hurried away she wondered dazedly why she had stayed to listen
so long. What a monster he was! His meaning was plain, had always been
so from the first day he laid eyes upon her, and he was utterly
conscienceless. She had known all this; and yet, in her proud, youthful
confidence, and in her need, every hour more desperate and urgent, to
know the truth, she had dared risk herself with him. Withal, the man
was shrewd and observant and had divined her mental condition with
remarkable sagacity. She had failed with him; but the girl now knew
that she could never rest till she found an answer to her questions.
She MUST kill this suspicion that ate into her so. She thought tenderly
of her uncle's goodness to her, clung with despairing faith to the last
of her kin. The blood ties of the Chesters were close and she felt in
dire need of that lost brother who was somewhere in this mysterious
land--need of some one in whom ran the strain that bound her to the
weak old man up yonder. There was McNamara; but how could he help her,
how much did she know of him, this man who was now within the darkest
shadow of her new suspicions?
"Will you let me come in?" Helen asked her. "I have something to say to
you."
When they were inside, Cherry Malotte stood and gazed at her visitor
with inscrutable eyes and stony face.
"It isn't easy for me to come back," Helen began, "but I felt that I
had to. If you can help me, I hope you will. You said that you knew a
great wrong was being done. I have suspected it, but I didn't know, and
I've been afraid to doubt my own people. You said I had a part in
it--that I'd betrayed my friends. Wait a moment," she hurried on, at
the other's cynical smile. "Won't you tell me what you know and what
you think my part has been? I've heard and seen things that make me
think--oh, they make me afraid to think, and yet I can't find the
TRUTH! You see, in a struggle like this, people will make all sorts of
allegations, but do they KNOW, have they any proof, that my uncle has
done wrong?"
"No. You said Struve told you the whole scheme. I went to him and tried
to cajole the story out of him, but--" She shivered at the memory.
"What success did you have?" inquired the listener, oddly curious for
all her cold dislike.
Cherry laughed cruelly. "So, failing there, you came back to me, back
for another favor from the waif. Well, Miss Helen Chester, I don't
believe a word you've said and I'll tell you nothing. Go back to the
uncle and the rawboned lover who sent you, and inform them that I'll
speak when the time comes. They think I know too much, do they?--so
they've sent you to spy? Well, I'll make a compact. You play your game
and I'll play mine. Leave Glenister alone and I'll not tell on
McNamara. Is it a bargain?"
"No, no, no! Can't you SEE? That's not it. All I want is the truth of
this thing."
"Then go back to Struve and get it. He'll tell you; I won't. Drive your
bargain with him--you're able. You've fooled better men--now, see what
you can do with him."
Helen left, realizing the futility of further effort, though she felt
that this woman did not really doubt her, but was scourged by jealousy
till she deliberately chose this attitude.
Reaching her own house, she wrote two brief notes and called in her Jap
boy from the kitchen.
"Fred, I want you to hunt up Mr. Glenister and give him this note. If
you can't find him, then look for his partner and give the other to
him." Fred vanished, to return in an hour with the letter for Dextry
still in his hand.
"I don' catch dis feller," he explained. "Young mans say he gone, come
back mebbe one, two, 'leven days."
"Yes, ma'am."
"Yes, ma'am."
"Your servant,
"ROY GLENISTER."
As she read the note, Judge Stillman entered, and it seemed to the girl
that he had aged a year for every hour in the last twelve, or else the
yellow afternoon light limned the sagging hollows and haggard lines of
his face most pitilessly. He showed in voice and manner the nervous
burden under which he labored.
"Alec has told me about your engagement, and it lifts a terrible load
from me. I'm mighty glad you're going to marry him. He's a wonderful
man, and he's the only one who can save us."
"What do you mean by that? What are we in danger of?" she inquired,
avoiding discussion of McNamara's announcement.
"Why, that mob, of course. They'll come back. They said so. But Alec
can handle the commanding officer at the post, and, thanks to him,
we'll have soldiers guarding the house hereafter."
"I don't think I quite understand you," said the girl, through
whitening lips.
"Oh yes, you do. I want the names of the ring-leaders, so that I can
jail them. You can worm it out of that fellow if you try."
Helen looked at the old man in a horror that at first was dumb. "You
ask this of me?" she demanded, hoarsely, at last.
"It's infamous! You're asking me to betray the very man who saved us
not twelve hours ago. He risked his life for us."
But she said "No" firmly, and quietly went to her own room, where,
behind the locked door, she sat for a long time staring with unseeing
eyes, her hands tight clenched in her lap. At last she whispered:
She remained hidden during the dinner-hour, and pleaded a headache when
McNamara called in the early evening. Although she had not seen him
since he left her the night before, bearing her tacit promise to wed
him, yet how could she meet him now with the conviction growing on her
hourly that he was a master-rogue? She wrestled with the thought that
he and her uncle, her own uncle who stood in the place of a father,
were conspirators. And yet, at memory of the Judge's cold-blooded
request that she should turn traitress, her whole being was revolted.
If he could ask a thing like that, what other heartless, selfish act
might he not be capable of? All the long, solitary evening she kept her
room, but at last, feeling faint, slipped down-stairs in search of
Fred, for she had eaten nothing since her late breakfast.
Voices reached her from the parlor, and as she came to the last step
she froze there in an attitude of listening. The first sentence she
heard through the close-drawn curtains banished all qualms at
eavesdropping. She stood for many breathless minutes drinking in the
plot that came to her plainly from within, then turned, gathered up her
skirts, and tiptoed back to her room. Here she made haste madly,
tearing off her house clothes and donning others.
She pressed her face to the window and noted that the night was like a
close-hung velvet pall, without a star in sight. Nevertheless, she
wound a heavy veil about her hat and face before she extinguished the
light and stepped into the hall. Hearing McNamara's "Good-night" at the
front-door, she retreated again while her uncle slowly mounted the
stairs and paused before her chamber. He called her name softly, but
when she did not answer continued on to his own room. When he was
safely within she descended quietly, went out, and locked the
front-door behind her, placing the key in her bosom. She hurried now,
feeling her way through the thick gloom in a panic, while in her mind
was but one frightened thought: "I'll be too late. I'll be too late."
CHAPTER XVII
Even after Helen had been out for some time she could barely see
sufficiently to avoid collisions. The air, weighted by a low-hung roof
of clouds, was surcharged with the electric suspense of an impending
storm, and seemed to sigh and tremble at the hint of power in leash. It
was that pause before the conflict wherein the night laid finger upon
its lips.
"Hold on--it's a woman!" ejaculated the man who had pinioned her arms,
loosing his hold till only a hand remained on her shoulder. The other
lowered the weapon he had jammed to her face and peered closely.
"Why, Miss Chester," he said. "What are you doing here? You came near
getting hurt."
"I am bound for the Wilsons', but I must have lost my way in the
darkness. I think you have cut my face." She controlled her fright
firmly.
"That's too bad," one said. "We mistook you for--" And the other broke
in, sharply, "You'd better run along. We're waiting for some one."
Helen hastened back by the route she had come, knowing that there was
still time, and that as yet her uncle's emissaries had not laid hands
upon Glenister. She had overheard the Judge and McNamara plotting to
drag the town with a force of deputies, seizing not only her two
friends, but every man suspected of being a Vigilante. The victims were
to be jailed without bond, without reason, without justice, while the
mechanism of the court was to be juggled in order to hold them until
fall, if necessary. They had said that the officers were already busy,
so haste was a crying thing. She sped down the dark streets towards the
house of Cherry Malotte, but found no light nor answer to her knock.
She was distracted now, and knew not where to seek next among the
thousand spots which might hide the man she wanted. What chance had she
against the posse sweeping the town from end to end? There was only
one; he might be at the Northern Theatre. Even so, she could not reach
him, for she dared not go there herself. She thought of Fred, her Jap
boy, but there was no time. Wasted moments meant failure.
Roy had once told her that he never gave up what he undertook. Very
well, she would show that even a girl may possess determination. This
was no time for modesty or shrinking indecision, so she pulled the veil
more closely about her face and took her good name into her hands. She
made rapidly towards the lighted streets which cast a skyward glare,
and from which, through the breathless calm, arose the sound of
carousal. Swiftly she threaded the narrow alleys in search of the
theatre's rear entrance, for she dared not approach from the front. In
this way she came into a part of the camp which had lain hidden from
her until now, and of the existence of which she had never dreamed.
Returning, she pounded on the door, possessed of the sense that the man
she sought was here, till at last it was flung open, framing the
silhouette of a shirt-sleeved, thick-set youth, who shouted:
"What 'n 'ell do you want to butt in for while the show's on? Go round
front." She caught a glimpse of disordered scenery, and before he could
slam the door in her face thrust a silver dollar into his hand, at the
same time wedging herself into the opening. He pocketed the coin and
the door clicked to behind her.
"Well, speak up. The act's closin'." Evidently he was the directing
genius of the performance, for at that moment the chorus broke into
full cry, and he said, hurriedly:
"Wait a minute. There goes the finally," and dashed away to tend his
drops and switches. When the curtain was down and the principals had
sought their dressing-rooms he returned.
"Sure. I seen him to-night. Come here." He led her towards the
footlights, and, pulling back the edge of the curtain, allowed her to
peep past him out into the dance-hall. She had never pictured a place
like this, and in spite of her agitation was astonished at its gaudy
elegance. The gallery was formed of a continuous row of compartments
with curtained fronts, in which men and women were talking, drinking,
singing. The seats on the lower floor were disappearing, and the canvas
cover was rolling back, showing the polished hardwood underneath, while
out through the wide folding-doors that led to the main gambling-room
she heard a brass-lunged man calling the commencement of the dance.
Couples glided into motion while she watched.
"I don't see him," said her guide. "You better walk out front and help
yourself." He indicated the stairs which led up to the galleried boxes
and the steps leading down on to the main floor, but she handed him
another coin, begging him to find Glenister and bring him to her.
"Hurry; hurry!" she implored.
She entered the door her counsellor indicated to find Roy lounging back
watching the dancers. He turned inquiringly--then, as she raised her
veil, leaped to his feet and jerked the curtains to.
"You must go away quickly," she gasped. "They're trying to arrest you."
"Yes, yes--but you're a Vigilante, and they're after you and all your
friends. Your house is guarded and the town is alive with deputies.
They've planned to jail you on some pretext or other and hold you
indefinitely. Please go before it's too late."
"Who?"
"Uncle Arthur and Mr. McNamara." She faced him squarely as she said it,
and therefore saw the light flame up in his eyes as he cried:
"And you came here to save me--came HERE at the risk of your good name?"
"Of course. I would have done the same for Dextry." The gladness died
away, leaving him listless.
"Well, let them come. I'm done, I guess. I heard from Wheaton to-night.
He's down and out, too--some trouble with the 'Frisco courts about
jurisdiction over these cases. I don't know that it's worth while to
fight any longer."
"Listen," she said. "You must go. I am sure there is a terrible wrong
being done, and you and I must stop it. I have seen the truth at last,
and you're in the right. Please hide for a time at least."
"Very well. If you have taken sides with us there's some hope left.
Thank you for the risk you ran in warning me."
She had moved to the front of the compartment and was peering forth
between the draperies when she stifled a cry.
"Too late! Too late! There they are. Don't part the curtains. They'll
see you."
"Run down the back stairs," she breathed, and pushed him through the
door. He caught and held her hand with a last word of gratitude. Then
he was gone. She drew down her veil and was about to follow when the
door opened and he reappeared.
"No use," he remarked, quietly. "There are three more waiting at the
foot." He looked out to find that the officers had searched the crowd
and were turning towards the front stairs, thus cutting off his
retreat. There were but two ways down from the gallery and no outside
windows from which to leap. As they had made no armed display, the
presence of the officers had not interrupted the dance.
Glenister drew his revolver, while into his eyes came the dancing
glitter that Helen had seen before, cold as the glint of winter
sunlight.
"No, not that--for God's sake!" she shuddered, clasping his arm.
"I must for your sake, or they'll find you here, and that's worse than
ruin. I'll fight it out in the corridors so that you can escape in the
confusion. Wait till the firing stops and the crowd gathers." His hand
was on the knob when she tore it loose, whispering hoarsely:
"They'll kill you. Wait! There's a better way. Jump." She dragged him
to the front of the box and pulled aside the curtains. "It isn't high
and they won't see you till it's too late. Then you can run through the
crowd." He grasped her idea, and, slipping his weapon back into its
holster, laid hold of the ledge before him and lowered himself down
over the dancers. He swung out unhesitatingly, and almost before he had
been observed had dropped into their midst. The gallery was but twice
the height of a man's head from the floor, so he landed on his feet and
had drawn his Colts even while the men at the stairs were shouting at
him to halt.
At sight of the naked weapons there was confusion, wherein the commands
of the deputies mingled with the shrieks of the women, the crash of
overturned chairs, and the sound of tramping feet, as the crowd divided
before Glenister and swept back against the wall in the same ominous
way that a crowd in the street had once divided on the morning of
Helen's arrival. The trombone player, who had sunk low in his chair
with closed eyes, looked out suddenly at the disturbance, and his alarm
was blown through the horn in a startled squawk. A large woman
whimpered, "Don't shoot," and thrust her palms to her ears, closing her
eyes tightly.
"I have a warrant for you," the officer cried, his voice loud in the
hush.
"Keep it," said Glenister, showing his teeth in a smile in which there
was no mirth. He backed diagonally across the hall, his boot-heels
clicking in the silence, his eyes shifting rapidly up and down the
stairs where the danger lay.
From her station Helen could see the whole tableau, all but the men on
the stairs, where her vision was cut off. She saw the dance girls
crouched behind their partners or leaning far out from the wall with
parted lips, the men eager yet fearful, the bartender with a
half-polished glass poised high. Then a quick movement across the hall
suddenly diverted her absorbed attention. She saw a man rip aside the
drapery of the box opposite and lean so far out that he seemed in peril
of falling. He undertook to sight a weapon at Glenister, who was just
passing from his view. At her first glance Helen gasped--her heart gave
one fierce lunge, and she cried out.
The distance across the pit was so short that she saw his every line
and lineament clearly; it was the brother she had sought these years
and years. Before she knew or could check it the blood call leaped
forth.
"Drury!" she cried, aloud, at which he whipped his head about, while
amazement and some other emotion she could not gauge spread slowly over
his features. For a long moment he stared at her without movement or
sign while the drama beneath went on, then he drew back into his
retreat with the dazed look of one doubting his senses, yet fearful of
putting them to the test. For her part, she saw nothing except her
brother vanishing slowly into the shadows as though stricken at her
glance, the curtains closing before his livid face--and then
pandemonium broke loose at her feet.
Helen made her way from the theatre as she had come, unobserved and
unobserving, but she walked in a dream. Emotions had chased each other
too closely to-night to be distinguishable, so she went mechanically
through the narrow alley to Front Street and thence to her home.
He entered the door without knocking, to find the girl removing her
coat. Her face gladdened at sight of him, but he checked her with quick
and cautious words, his speech almost drowned by the roar outside.
"Are you alone?" She nodded, and he slipped the bolt behind him, saying:
"The marshals are after me. We just had a 'run in' at the Northern, and
I'm on the go. No--nothing serious yet, but they want the Vigilantes,
and I must get them word. Will you help me?" He rapidly recounted the
row of the last ten minutes while she nodded her quick understanding.
"You're safe here for a little while," she told him, "for the storm
will check them. If they should come, there's a back door leading out
from the kitchen and a side entrance yonder. In my room you'll find a
French window. They can't corner you very well."
"Slapjack and Dex are out at the shaft house--you know--that quartz
claim on the mountain above the Midas." He hesitated. "Will you lend me
your saddle-horse? It's a black night and I may kill him."
She shook her head. "You can't do it. You can't get out there before
daylight if you wait to rouse these people, and McNamara has probably
telephoned the mines to send a party up to the quartz claim after Dex.
He knows where the old man is as well as you do, and they'll raid him
before dawn."
"I'm afraid so, but it's all I can offer. Will you give me the horse?"
"No! He's only a pony, and you'd founder him in the tundra. The mud is
knee-deep. I'll go myself."
"Good Heavens, girl, in such a night! Why, it's worth your life! Listen
to it! The creeks will be up and you'll have to swim. No, I can't let
you."
"He's a good little horse, and he'll take me through." Then, coming
close, she continued: "Oh, boy! Can't you see that I want to help?
Can't you see that I--I'd DIE for you if it would do any good?" He
gazed gravely into her wide blue eyes and said, awkwardly: "Yes, I
know. I'm sorry things are--as they are--but you wouldn't have me lie
to you, little woman?"
"No. You're the only true man I ever knew. I guess that's why I love
you. And I do love you, oh, so much! I want to be good and worthy to
love you, too."
She laid her face against his arm and caressed him with clinging
tenderness, while the wind yelled loudly about the eaves and the
windows drummed beneath the rain. His heavy brows knit themselves
together as she whispered:
"I love you! I love you! I love you!" with such an agony of longing in
her voice that her soft accents were sharply distinguishable above the
turmoil. The growing wildness seemed a part of the woman's passion,
which whipped and harried her like a willow in a blast.
"Then why do you think of that woman?" she broke in, fiercely. "She's
bad and false. She betrayed you once; she's in the play now; you've
told me so yourself. Why don't you be a man and forget her?"
"I can't," he said, simply. "You're wrong, though, when you think she's
bad. I found to-night that she's good and brave and honest. The part
she played was played innocently, I'm sure of that, in spite of the
fact that she'll marry McNamara. It was she who overheard them plotting
and risked her reputation to warn me."
Cherry's face whitened, while the shadowy eagerness that had rested
there died utterly. "She came into that dive alone? She did that?" He
nodded, at which she stood thinking for some time, then continued:
"You're honest with me, Roy, and I'll be the same with you. I'm tired
of deceit, tired of everything. I tried to make you think she was bad,
but in my own heart I knew differently all the time. She came here
to-day and humbled herself to get the truth, humbled herself to me, and
I sent her away. She suspected, but she didn't know, and when she asked
for information I insulted her. That's the kind of a creature I am. I
sent her back to Struve, who offered to tell her the whole story."
"You needn't worry; she won't see him again. She loathes the ground he
walks on."
"And yet he's no worse than that other scoundrel. Come, girl, we have
work to do; we must act, and act quickly." He gave her his message to
Dextry, then she went to her room and slipped into a riding-habit. When
she came out he asked: "Where is your raincoat? You'll be drenched in
no time."
"I can't ride with it. I'll be thrown, anyway, and I don't want to be
all bound up. Water won't hurt me."
She thrust her tiny revolver into her dress, but he took it and upon
examination shook his head.
"If you need a gun you'll need a good one." He removed the belt from
his own waist and buckled his Colts about her.
"I'll get another in ten minutes." Then, as they were leaving, he said:
"One other request, Cherry. I'll be in hiding for a time, and I must
get word to Miss Chester to keep watch of her uncle, for the big fight
is on at last and the boys will hang him sure if they catch him. I owe
her this last warning. Will you send it to her?"
"I'll do it for your sake, not for her--no, no; I don't mean that. I'll
do the right thing all round. Leave it here and I'll see that she gets
it to-morrow. And--Roy--be careful of yourself." Her eyes were starry
and in their depths lurked neither selfishness nor jealousy now, only
that mysterious glory of a woman who makes sacrifice.
Together they scurried back to the stable, and yet, in that short
distance, she would have been swept from her feet had he not seized
her. They blew in through the barn door, streaming and soaked by the
blinding sheets that drove scythe-like ahead of the wind. He struck a
light, and the pony whinnied at recognition of his mistress. She
stroked the little fellow's muzzle while Glenister cinched on her
saddle. Then, when she was at last mounted, she leaned forward:
He took her rain-wet face between his hands and kissed her upon the
lips as he would have saluted a little maid. As he did so, unseen by
both of them, a face was pressed for an instant against the pane of
glass in the stable wall.
"You're a brave girl and may God bless you," he said, extinguishing the
light. He flung the door wide and she rode out into the storm. Locking
the portal, he plunged back towards the house to write his hurried
note, for there was much to do and scant time for its accomplishment,
despite the helping hand of the hurricane. He heard the voice of Bering
as it thundered on the Golden Sands, and knew that the first great
storm of the fall had come. Henceforth he saw that the violence of men
would rival the rising elements, for the deeds of this night would stir
their passions as AEolus was rousing the hate of the sea.
He neglected to bolt the house door as he entered, but flung off his
dripping coat and, seizing pad and pencil, scrawled his message. The
wind screamed about the cabin, the lamp flared smokily, and Glenister
felt a draught suck past him as though from an open door at his back as
he wrote:
"I can't do anything more. The end has come and it has brought the
hatred and bloodshed that I have been trying to prevent. I played the
game according to your rules, but they forced me back to first
principles in spite of myself, and now I don't know what the finish
will be. To-morrow will tell. Take care of your uncle, and if you
should wish to communicate with me, go to Cherry Malotte. She is a
friend to both of us.
As he sealed this he paused, while he felt the hair on his neck rise
and bristle and a chill race up his spine. His heart fluttered, then
pounded onward till the blood thumped audibly at his ear-drums and he
found himself swaying in rhythm to its beat. The muscles of his back
cringed and rippled at the proximity of some hovering peril, and yet an
irresistible feeling forbade him to turn. A sound came from close
behind his chair--the drip, drip, drip of water. It was not from the
eaves, nor yet from a faulty shingle. His back was to the kitchen door,
through which he had come, and, although there were no mirrors before
him, he felt a menacing presence as surely as though it had touched
him. His ears were tuned to the finest pin-pricks of sound, so that he
heard the faint, sighing "squish" of a sodden shoe upon which a weight
had shifted. Still something chained him to his seat. It was as though
his soul laid a restraining hand upon his body, waiting for the instant.
He let his hand seek his hip carelessly, but remembered where his gun
was. Mechanically, he addressed the note in shaking characters, while
behind him sounded the constant drip, drip, drip that he knew came from
saturated garments. For a long moment he sat, till he heard the
stealthy click of a gun-lock muffled by finger pressure. Then he set
his face and slowly turned to find the Bronco Kid standing behind him
as though risen from the sea, his light clothes wet and clinging, his
feet centred in a spreading puddle. The dim light showed the convulsive
fury of his features above the levelled weapon, whose hammer was curled
back like the head of a striking adder, his eyes gleaming with frenzy.
Glenister's mouth was powder dry, but his mind was leaping riotously
like dust before a gale, for he divined himself to be in the deadliest
peril of his life. When he spoke the calmness of his voice surprised
himself.
"What's the matter, Bronco?" The Kid made no reply, and Roy repeated,
"What do you want?"
"That's a hell of a question," the gambler said, hoarsely. "I want you,
of course, and I've got you."
"Hold up! I am unarmed. This is your third try, and I want to know
what's back of it."
"DAMN the talk!" cried the faro-dealer, moving closer till the light
shone on his features, which commenced to twitch. He raised the
revolver he had half lowered. "There's reason enough, and you know it."
Glenister looked him fairly between the eyes, gripping himself with
firm hands to stop the tremor he felt in his bones. "You can't kill
me," he said. "I am too good a man to murder. You might shoot a crook,
but you can't kill a brave man when he's unarmed. You're no assassin."
He remained rigid in his chair, however, moving nothing but his lips,
meeting the other's look unflinchingly. The Kid hesitated an instant,
while his eyes, which had been fixed with the glare of hatred, wavered
a moment, betraying the faintest sign of indecision. Glenister cried
out, exultantly:
The gambler grimaced. "I can't do it. If I could, I'd have shot you
before you turned. But you'll have to fight, you dog. Get up and draw."
"Yes, and more too," the man gritted. "I saw it all."
"I have tried it before, but murder isn't my game." The Kid's eye
caught the glint of Cherry's revolver where she had discarded it.
"There's a gun--get it."
"It's no good. You'd carry the six bullets and never feel them. I don't
know what this is all about, but I'll fight you whenever I'm heeled
right."
"Oh, you black-hearted hound," snarled the Kid. "I want to shoot, but
I'm afraid. I used to be a gentleman and I haven't lost it all, I
guess. But I won't wait the next time. I'll down you on sight, so you'd
better get ironed in a hurry." He backed out of the room into the
semi-darkness of the kitchen, watching with lynx-like closeness the man
who sat so quietly under the shaded light. He felt behind him for the
outer door-knob and turned it to let in a white sheet of rain, then
vanished like a storm wraith, leaving a parched-lipped man and a zigzag
trail of water, which gleamed in the lamplight like a pool of blood.
CHAPTER XVIII
Glenister did not wait long after his visitor's departure, but
extinguished the light, locked the door, and began the further
adventures of this night. The storm welcomed him with suffocating
violence, sucking the very breath from his lips, while the rain beat
through till his flesh was cold and aching. He thought with a pang of
the girl facing this tempest, going out to meet the thousand perils of
the night. And it remained for him to bear his part as she bore hers,
smilingly.
The last hour had added another and mysterious danger to his full
measure. Could the Kid be jealous of Cherry? Surely not. Then what else?
The tornado had driven his trailers to cover, evidently, for the
streets were given over to its violence, and Roy encountered no hostile
sign as he was buffeted from house to house. He adventured cautiously
and yet with haste, finding certain homes where the marshals had been
before him peopled now only by frightened wives and children. A
scattered few of the Vigilantes had been taken thus, while the warring
elements had prevented their families from spreading the alarm or
venturing out for succor. Those whom he was able to warn dressed
hurriedly, took their rifles, and went out into the drifting night,
leaving empty cabins and weeping women. The great fight was on.
Towards daylight the remnants of the Vigilantes straggled into the big
blank warehouse on the sand-spit, and there beneath the smoking glare
of lanterns cursed the name of McNamara. As dawn grayed the ragged
eastern sky-line, Dextry and Slapjack blew in through the spindrift,
bringing word from Cherry and lifting a load from Glenister's mind.
"There's a game girl," said the old miner, as he wrung out his clothes.
"She was half gone when she got to us, and now she's waiting for the
storm to break so that she can come back."
"Uriatic acid in the blood," said Dextry. "What's our next move?" he
asked of his partner. "When do we hang this politician? Seems like
we've got enough able-bodied piano-movers here to tie a can onto the
whole outfit, push the town site of Nome off the map, and start afresh."
"I think we had better lie low and watch developments," the other
cautioned. "There's no telling what may turn up during the day."
"You're not fit to herd sheep. Thirty men out all night and what do you
get? A dozen mullet-headed miners. You bag the mud-hens and the big
game runs to cover. I wanted Glenister, but you let him slip through
your fingers--now it's war. What a mess you've made! If I had even ONE
helper with a brain the size of a flaxseed, this game would be a gift,
but you've bungled every move from the start. Bah! Put a spy in the
bull-pen with those prisoners and make them talk. Offer them anything
for information. Now get out!"
He called for a certain deputy and questioned him regarding the night's
quest, remarking, finally:
"Nobody came near Glenister's house except Miss Chester," the man
replied.
"What?"
Later, one of the men who had been with Voorhees at the Northern asked
to see the receiver and told him:
"The chief won't believe that I saw Miss Chester in the dance-hall last
night, but she was there with Glenister. She must have put him wise to
our game or he wouldn't have known we were after him."
His hearer made no comment, but, when alone, rose and paced the floor
with heavy tread while his face grew savage and brutal.
"So that's the game, eh? It's man to man from now on. Very well,
Glenister, I'll have your life for that, and then--you'll pay, Miss
Helen." He considered carefully. A plot for a plot. If he could not
swap intrigue with these miners and beat them badly, he deserved to
lose. Now that the girl gave herself to their cause he would use her
again and see how well she answered. Public opinion would not stand too
great a strain, and, although he had acted within his rights last
night, he dared not go much further. Diplomacy, therefore, must serve.
He must force his enemies beyond the law and into his trap. She had
passed the word once; she would do so again.
"Hush! I will not listen!" she cried, passionately. "I warned him
because you would have sacrificed him after he had saved our lives.
That is all. He is an honest man, and I am grateful to him. That is the
only foundation for your insult."
"You thought you were doing right, of course, but your action will have
terrible consequences. Now we'll have riot, bloodshed, and Heaven knows
what. It was to save all this that I wanted to break up their
organization. A week's imprisonment would have done it, but now they're
armed and belligerent and we'll have a battle to-night."
"There is no use trying to check them. They are rushing to their own
destruction. I have learned that they plan to attack the Midas
to-night, and I'll have fifty soldiers waiting for them there. It is a
shame, for they are decent fellows, blinded by ignorance and misled by
that young miner. This will be the blackest night the North has ever
seen."
With this McNamara left the house and went in search of Voorhees,
remarking to himself: "Now, Miss Helen--send your warning--the sooner
the better. If I know those Vigilantes, it will set them crazy, and yet
not crazy enough to attack the Midas. They will strike for me, and when
they hit my poor, unguarded office, they'll think hell has moved North."
"Mr. Marshal," said he to his tool, "I want you to gather forty men
quietly and to arm them with Winchesters. They must be fellows who
won't faint at blood--you know the kind. Assemble them at my office
after dark, one at a time, by the back way. It must be done with
absolute secrecy. Now, see if you can do this one thing and not get
balled up. If you fail, I'll make you answer to me."
"If there's one thing I want to avoid, it's soldiers, either here or at
the mines. When they step in, we step out, and I'm not ready for that
just yet." The receiver smiled sinisterly.
Helen meanwhile had fled to her room, and there received Glenister's
note through Cherry Malotte's messenger. It rekindled her worst fears
and bore out McNamara's prophecy. The more she read of it the more
certain she grew that the crisis was only a question of hours, and that
with darkness, Tragedy would walk the streets of Nome. The thought of
the wrong already done was lost in the lonely girl's terror of the
crime about to happen, for it seemed to her she had been the instrument
to set these forces in motion, that she had loosed this swift-speeding
avalanche of greed, hatred, and brutality. And when the crash should
come--the girl shuddered. It must not be. She would shriek a warning
from the house-tops even at cost of her uncle, of McNamara, and of
herself. And yet she had no proof that a crime existed. Although it all
lay clear in her own mind, the certainty of it arose only from her
intuition. If only she were able to take a hand--if only she were not a
woman. Then Cherry Malotte's words anent Struve recurred to her, "A
bottle of wine and a woman's face." They brought back the lawyer's
assurance that those documents she had safeguarded all through the long
spring-time journey really contained the proof. If they did, then they
held the power to check this impending conflict. Her uncle and the boss
would not dare continue if threatened with exposure and prosecution.
The more she thought of it, the more urgent seemed the necessity to
prevent the battle of to-night. There was a chance here, at least, and
the only one.
Adding to her mental torment was the constant vision of that face in
the curtains at the Northern. It was her brother, yet what mystery
shrouded this affair, also? What kept him from her? What caused him to
slink away like a thief discovered? She grew dizzy and hysterical.
"I knew you would." The blood went out of his cheeks, then surged back
up to his eyes. "It's a bargain, then?"
She nodded. "Give them to me first."
But it was the terror of to-night's doings that led her into his power.
"I'll never come back," she said. "It is my whim to know to-day--yes,
at once."
He meditated for a time. "Then to-day it shall be. I'll shirk the
fight, I'll sacrifice what shreds of duty have clung to me, because the
fever for you is in my bones, and it seems to me I'd do murder for it.
That's the kind of a man I am, and I have no pride in myself because of
it. But I've always been that way We'll ride to the Sign of the Sled.
It's a romantic little road-house ten miles from here, perched high
above the Snake River trail. We'll take dinner there together."
"But I MUST. The blood of those men will be on me if I don't stop this
tragedy. If those papers tell the tale I think they do, I can call off
my uncle and make McNamara give back the mines. You said Struve told
you the whole scheme. Did you see the PROOF?"
"No, I have only his word, but he spoke of those documents repeatedly,
saying they contained his instructions to tie up the mines in order to
give a foothold for the lawsuits. He bragged that the rest of the gang
were in his power and that he could land them in the penitentiary for
conspiracy. That's all."
"It's the only chance," said Helen. "They are sending soldiers to the
Midas to lie in ambush, and you must warn the Vigilantes." Cherry paled
at this and ejaculated:
"Good Lord! Roy said he'd lead an attack to-night." The two stared at
each other.
"If I succeed with Struve I can stop it all--all of this injustice and
crime--everything."
"Do you realize what you're risking?" Cherry demanded. "That man is an
animal. You'll have to kill him to save yourself, and he'll never give
up those proofs."
"Yes, he will," said Helen, fiercely, "and I defy him to harm me. The
Sign of the Sled is a public roadhouse with a landlord, a telephone,
and other guests. Will you warn Mr. Glenister about the troops?"
"I will, and bless you for a brave girl. Wait a moment." Cherry took
from the dresser her tiny revolver. "Don't hesitate to use this. I want
you to know also that I'm sorry for what I said yesterday."
As she hurried away, Helen realized with a shock the change that the
past few months had wrought in her. In truth, it was as Glenister had
said, his Northland worked strangely with its denizens. What of that
shrinking girl who had stepped out of the sheltered life, strong only
in her untried honesty, to become a hunted, harried thing, juggling
with honor and reputation, in her heart a half-formed fear that she
might kill a man this night to gain her end? The elements were moulding
her with irresistible hands. Roy's contact with the primitive had not
roughened him more quickly than had hers.
She met her appointment with Struve, and they rode away together, he
talkative and elated, she silent and icy.
Late in the afternoon the cloud banks to the eastward assumed alarming
proportions. They brought with them an early nightfall, and when they
broke let forth a tempest which rivalled that of the previous night.
During the first of it armed men came sifting into McNamara's office
from the rear and were hidden throughout the building. Whenever he
descried a peculiarly desperate ruffian the boss called him aside for
private instruction and gave minute description of a wide-shouldered,
erect, youth in white hat and half-boots. Gradually he set his trap
with the men Voorhees had raked from the slums, and when it was done
smiled to himself. As he thought it over he ceased to regret the
miscarriage of last night's plan, for it had served to goad his enemies
to the point he desired, to the point where they would rush to their
own undoing. He thought with satisfaction of the role he would play in
the United States press when the sensational news of this night's
adventure came out. A court official who dared to do his duty despite a
lawless mob. A receiver who turned a midnight attack into a rout and
shambles. That is what they would say. What if he did exceed his
authority thereafter? What if there were a scandal? Who would question?
As to soldiers--no, decidedly no. He wished no help of soldiers at this
time.
The sight of a ship in the offing towards dark caused him some
uneasiness, for, notwithstanding the assurance that the course of
justice in the San Francisco courts had been clogged, he knew Bill
Wheaton to be a resourceful lawyer and a determined man. Therefore, it
relieved him to note the rising gale, which precluded the possibility
of interference from that source. Let them come to-morrow if they
would. By that time some of the mines would be ownerless and his
position strengthened a hundredfold.
"Bring your niece over to my place to-night. There's trouble in the air
and I'm prepared for it."
"She hasn't returned from her ride yet. I'm afraid she's caught in the
storm." The Judge gazed anxiously into the darkness.
During all the long day the Vigilantes lay in hiding, impatient
at their idleness and wondering at the lack of effort made towards
their discovery, not dreaming that McNamara had more cleverly hidden
plans behind. When Cherry's note of warning came they gathered in the
back room and gave voice to their opinions.
"There's only one way to clear the atmosphere," said the chairman.
This met with general approval, Glenister alone demurring. Said he: "I
have reasoned it out differently, and I want you to hear me through
before deciding. Last night I got word from Wheaton that the California
courts are against us. He attributes it to influence, but, whatever the
reason, we are cut off from all legal help either in this court or on
appeal. Now, suppose we lynch these officials to-night--what do we
gain? Martial law in two hours, our mines tied up for another year, and
who knows what else? Maybe a corrupter court next season. Suppose, on
the other hand, we fail--and somehow I feel that we will, for that boss
is no fool. What then? Those of us who don't find the morgue will end
in jail. You say we can't meet the soldiers. I say we can and must. We
must carry this row to them. We must jump it past the courts of Alaska,
past the courts of California, and up to the White House, where there's
one honest man, at least. We must do something to wake up the men in
Washington. We must get out of politics, for McNamara can beat us
there. Although he's a strong man he can't corrupt the President. We
have one shot left, and it must reach the Potomac. When Uncle Sam takes
a hand we'll get a square deal, so I say let us strike at the Midas
to-night and take her if we can. Some of us will go down, but what of
it?"
"All I want for myself," he said, "is the chance to run the big risk.
It's mine by right."
"Ain't he a heller?"
"We'll go you," the miners chimed to a man. And the chairman added:
"Let's have Glenister lead this forlorn hope. I am willing to stand or
fall on his judgment." They acquiesced without a dissenting voice and
with the firm hands of a natural leader the young man took control.
"Let's hurry up," said one. "It's a long 'mush' and the mud is
knee-deep."
A few more words and Glenister, accompanied by these two, slipped out
into the whirling storm, and a half-hour later the rest followed. One
by one the Vigilantes left, the blackness blotting them up an
arm's-length from the door, till at last the big, bleak warehouse
echoed hollowly to the voice of the wind and water.
Over in the eastern end of town, behind dark windows upon which the
sheeted rain beat furiously, other armed men lay patiently
waiting--waiting some word from the bulky shadow which stood with
folded arms close against a square of gray, while over their heads a
wretched old man paced back and forth, wringing his hands, pausing at
every turn to peer out into the night and to mumble the name of his
sister's child.
CHAPTER XIX
DYNAMITE
Early in the evening Cherry Malotte opened her door to find the Bronco
Kid on her step. He entered and threw off his rubber coat. Knowing him
well, she waited for his disclosure of his errand. His sallow skin was
without trace of color, his eyes were strangely tired, deep lines had
gathered about his lips, while his hands kept up constant little
nervous explorations as though for days and nights he had not slept and
now hovered on the verge of some hysteria. He gave her the impression
of a smouldering mine with the fire eating close up to the powder. She
judged that his body had been racked by every passion till now it hung
jaded and weary, yielding only to the spur of his restless, revengeful
spirit.
"Do you love Roy Glenister?" His voice, like his manner, was jealously
eager, and he watched her carefully as she replied, without quibble or
deceit:
"Yes, Kid; and I always shall. He is the only true man I have ever
known, and I'm not ashamed of my feelings."
For a long time he studied her, and then broke into rapid speech,
allowing her no time for interruption.
"I've held back and held back because I'm no talker. I can't be, in my
business; but this is my last chance, and I want to put myself right
with you. I've loved you ever since the Dawson days, not in the way
you'd expect from a man of my sort, perhaps, but with the kind of love
that a woman wants. I never showed my hand, for what was the use? That
man outheld me. I'd have quit faro years back only I wouldn't leave
this country as long as you were a part of it, and up here I'm only a
gambler, fit for nothing else. I'd made up my mind to let you have him
till something happened a couple of months ago, but now it can't go
through. I'll have to down him. It isn't concerning you--I'm not a
welcher. No, it's a thing I can't talk about, a thing that's made me
into a wolf, made me skulk and walk the alleys like a dago. It's put
murder into my heart. I've tried to assassinate him. I tried it here
last night--but--I was a gentleman once--till the cards came. He knows
the answer now, though, and he's ready for me--so one of us will go out
like a candle when we meet. I felt that I had to tell you before I cut
him down or before he got me."
"You're talking like a madman, Kid," she replied, "and you mustn't turn
against him now. He has troubles enough. I never knew you cared for me.
What a tangle it is, to be sure. You love me, I love him, he loves that
girl, and she loves a crook. Isn't that tragedy enough without your
adding to it? You come at a bad time, too, for I'm half insane. There's
something dreadful in the air to-night--"
"I'll have to kill him," the man muttered, doggedly, and, plead or
reason as she would, she could get nothing from him except those words,
till at last she turned upon him fiercely.
"You say you love me. Very well--let's see if you do. I know the kind
of a man you are and I know what this feud will mean to him, coming
just at this time. Put it aside and I'll marry you."
The gambler rose slowly to his feet. "You do love him, don't you?" She
bowed her face, and he winced, but continued: "I wouldn't make you my
wife that way. I didn't mean it that way."
At this she laughed bitterly, "Oh, I see. Of course not. How foolish of
me to expect it of a man like you. I understand what you mean now, and
the bargain will stand just the same, if that is what you came for. I
wanted to leave this life and be good, to go away and start over and
play the game square, but I see it's no use. I'll pay. I know how
relentless you are, and the price is low enough. You can have me--and
that--marriage talk--I'll not speak of again. I'll stay what I am for
his sake."
"Stop!" cried the Kid. "You're wrong. I'm not that kind of a sport."
His voice broke suddenly, its vehemence shaking his slim body. "Oh,
Cherry, I love you the way a man ought to love a woman. It's one of the
two good things left in me, and I want to take you away from here where
we can both hide from the past, where we can start new, as you say."
"In an hour, and give my heart's blood for the privilege; but I can't
stop this thing, not even if your own dear life hung upon it. I MUST
kill that man."
She approached him and laid her arms about his neck, every line of her
body pleading, but he refused steadfastly, while the sweat stood out
upon his brow.
She begged: "They're all against him, Kid. He's fighting a hopeless
fight. He laid all he had at that girl's feet, and I'll do the same for
you."
The man growled savagely. "He got his reward. He took all she had--"
Into his dark eyes slowly crept a hungry look, and she felt him begin
to tremble the least bit. He undertook to speak, paused, wet his lips,
then carefully chose these words:
"Absolutely."
He sat down weakly and passed a shaking hand over his face, which had
begun to twitch and jerk again as it had on that night when his
vengeance was thwarted.
"I may as well tell you that I know she's more than that. She's honest
and high-principled. I don't know why I'm saying this, but it was on my
mind and I was half distracted when you came. She's in danger to-night,
though--at this minute. I don't dare to think of what may have
happened, for she's risked everything to make reparation to Roy and his
friends."
"What?"
"Struve!" shouted the gambler, leaping to his feet. "Alone with Struve
on a night like this?" He shook her fiercely, crying: "What for? Tell
me quick!"
She recounted the reasons for Helen's adventure, while the man's face
became terrible.
"Oh, Kid, I am to blame for letting her go. Why did I do it? I'm
afraid--afraid."
"The Sign of the Sled belongs to Struve, and the fellow who runs it is
a rogue." The Bronco looked at the clock, his eyes bloodshot and dull
like those of a goaded, fly-maddened bull. "It's eight o'clock now--ten
miles--two hours. Too late!"
"What ails you?" she questioned, baffled by his strange demeanor. "You
called ME the one woman just now, and yet--"
"Your--sister? Oh, I--I'm glad. I'm glad--but don't stand there like a
wooden man, for you've work to do. Wake up. Can't you hear? She's in
peril!" Her words whipped him out of his stupor so that he drew himself
somewhat under control. "Get into your coat. Hurry! Hurry! My pony will
take you there." She snatched his garment from the chair and held it
for him while the life ran back into his veins. Together they dashed
out into the storm as she and Roy had done, and as he flung the saddle
on the buckskin, she said:
"I understand it all now. You heard the talk about her and Glenister;
but it's wrong. I lied and schemed and intrigued against her, but it's
over now. I guess there's a little streak of good in me somewhere,
after all."
He spoke to her from the saddle. "It's more than a streak, Cherry, and
you're my kind of people." She smiled wanly back at him under the
lantern-light.
Upon leaving the rendezvous, Glenister and his two friends slunk
through the night, avoiding the life and lights of the town, while the
wind surged out of the voids to seaward, driving its wet burden through
their flapping slickers, pelting their faces as though enraged at its
failure to wash away the purposes written there. Their course brought
them to a cabin at the western outskirts of the city, where they paused
long enough to adjust something beneath the brims of their hats.
Past them ran the iron rails of the narrow-gauged road which led out
across the quaking tundra to the mountains and the mines. Upon this
slender trail of steel there rolled one small, ungainly teapot of an
engine which daily creaked and clanked back and forth at a snail's
pace, screaming and wailing its complaint of the two high-loaded
flat-cars behind. The ties beneath it were spiked to planks laid
lengthwise over the semi-liquid road-bed, in places sagging beneath the
surface till the humpbacked, short-waisted locomotive yawed and reeled
and squealed like a drunken fish-wife. At night it panted wearily into
the board station and there sighed and coughed and hissed away its
fatigue as the coals died and the breath relaxed in its lungs.
Early to bed and early to rise was perforce the motto of its grimy
crew, who lived near by. To-night they were just retiring when stayed
by a summons at their door. The engineer opened it to admit what
appeared to his astonished eyes to be a Krupp cannon propelled by a man
in yellow-oiled clothes and white cotton mask. This weapon assumed the
proportions of a great, one-eyed monster, which stared with baleful
fixity at his vitals, giving him a cold and empty feeling. Away back
beyond this Cyclops of the Sightless Orb were two other strangers
likewise equipped.
The fireman arose from his chair, dropping an empty shoe with a thump,
but, being of the West, without cavil or waste of wind, he stretched
his hands above his head, balancing on one foot to keep his unshod
member from the damp floor. He had unbuckled his belt, and now,
loosened by the movement, his overalls seemed bent on sinking floorward
in an ecstasy of abashment at the intrusion, whereupon with convulsive
grip he hugged them to their duty, one hand and foot still elevated as
though in the grand hailing-sign of some secret order. The other man
was new to the ways of the North, so backed to the limit of his
quarters, laid both hands protectingly upon his middle, and doubled up,
remarking, fervidly:
"Ha, ha!" laughed the fireman, with unnatural loudness. "Have your joke
boys."
"This ain't no joke," said the foremost figure, its breath bellying out
the mask at its mouth.
"Sure it is," insisted the shoeless one. "Must be--we ain't got
anything worth stealing."
"Get into your clothes and come along. We won't hurt you." The two
obeyed and were taken to the sleeping engine and there instructed to
produce a full head of steam in thirty minutes or suffer a premature
taking off and a prompt elision from the realms of applied mechanics.
As stimulus to their efforts two of the men stood over them till the
engine began to sob and sigh reluctantly. Through the gloom that
curtained the cab they saw other dim forms materializing and climbing
silently on to the cars behind; then, as the steam-gauge touched the
mark, the word was given and the train rumbled out from its shelter,
its shrill plaint at curb and crossing whipped away and drowned in the
storm.
Slapjack remained in the cab, gun in lap, while Dextry climbed back to
Glenister. He found the young man in good spirits, despite the
discomfort of his exposed position, and striving to light his pipe
behind the shelter of his coat.
As the train crept out of the camp and across the river bridge, its
only light or glimmer the sparks that were snatched and harried by the
blast, the partners seated themselves on the powder cases and conversed
guardedly, while about them sounded the low murmur of the men who
risked their all upon this cry to duty, who staked their lives and
futures upon this hazard of the hills, because they thought it right.
"We've made a good fight, whether we win or lose to-night," said Dextry.
"My hardest battle had nothing to do with the Midas or the mines of
Anvil. I fought and conquered myself."
"Awful wet night for philosophy," the first remarked. "It's apt to sour
on you like milk in a thunder-storm. S'pose you put overalls an' gum
boots on some of them Boston ideas an' lead 'em out where I can look
'em over an' find out what they're up to."
"I mean that I was a savage till I met Helen Chester and she made a man
of me. It took sixty days, but I think she did a good job. I love the
wild things just as much as ever, but I've learned that there are
duties a fellow owes to himself, and to other people, if he'll only
stop and think them out. I've found out, too, that the right thing is
usually the hardest to do. Oh, I've improved a lot."
"Gee! but you're popular with yourself. I don't see as it helps your
looks any. You're as homely as ever--an' what good does it do you after
all? She'll marry that big guy."
"I know. That's what rankles, for he's no more worthy of her than I am.
She'll do what's right, however, you may depend upon that, and perhaps
she'll change him the way she did me. Why, she worked a miracle in my
attitude towards life--my manner--"
"Oh, your manners are good enough as they lay," interrupted the other.
"You never did eat with your knife."
"No, when it comes to intimacies with decorum, you're right on the job
along with any of them Easterners. I watched you close at them 'Frisco
hotels last winter, and, say--you know as much as a horse. Why, you was
wise to them tablewares and pickle-forks equal to a head-waiter, and it
give me confidence just to be with you. I remember putting milk and
sugar in my consomme the first time. It was pale and in a cup and
looked like tea--but not you. No, sir! You savvied plenty and squeezed
a lemon into yours--to clean your fingers, I reckon."
Roy slapped his partner's wet back, for he was buoyant and elated. The
sense of nearing danger pulsed through him like wine. "That wasn't just
what I meant, but it goes. Say, if we win back our mine, we'll hit for
New York next--eh?"
Their common peril brought the friends together again, into that close
bond which had been theirs without interruption until this recent
change in the younger had led him to choose paths at variance with the
old man's ideas; and now they spoke, heart to heart, in the
half-serious, half-jesting ways of old, while beneath each whimsical
irony was that mutual love and understanding which had consecrated
their partnership.
Arriving at the end of the road, the Vigilantes debouched and went into
the darkness of the canon behind their leader, to whom the trails were
familiar. He bade them pause finally, and gave his last instructions.
"They are on the alert, so you want to be careful. Divide into two
parties and close in from both sides, creeping as near to the pickets
as possible without discovery. Remember to wait for the last blast.
When it comes, cut loose and charge like Sioux. Don't shoot to kill at
first, for they're only soldiers and under orders, but if they
stand--well, every man must do his work."
Dextry appealed to the dim figures forming the circle.
Glenister stopped him. "I won't yield the privilege. Come now--to your
places, men."
They melted away to each side while the old prospector paused to wring
his partner's hand.
"I'd ruther it was me, lad, but if they get you--God help 'em!" He
stumbled after the departing shadows, leaving Roy alone. With his naked
fingers, Glenister ripped open the powder cases and secreted the
contents upon his person. Each cartridge held dynamite enough to
devastate a village, and he loaded them inside his pockets, inside his
shirt, and everywhere that he had room, till he was burdened and cased
in an armor one-hundredth part of which could have blown him from the
face of the earth so utterly as to leave no trace except, perhaps, a
pit ripped out of the mountain-side. He looked to his fuses and saw
that they were wrapped in oiled paper, then placed them in his hat.
Having finished, he set out, walking with difficulty under the weight
he carried.
That his choice of location had been well made was evidenced by the
fact that the ground beneath his feet sloped away to a basin out of
which bubbled a spring. It furnished the drinking supply of the Midas,
and he knew every inch of the crevice it had worn down the mountain, so
felt his way cautiously along. At the bottom of the hill where it ran
out upon the level it had worn a considerable ditch through the soil,
and into this he crawled on hands and knees. His bulging clothes
handicapped him so that his gait was slow and awkward, while the rain
had swelled the streamlet till it trickled over his calves and up to
his wrists, chilling him so that his muscles cramped and his very bones
cried out with it. The sharp schist cut into his palms till they were
shredded and bleeding, while his knees found every jagged bit of
bed-rock over which he dragged himself. He could not see an
arm's-length ahead without rising, and, having removed his slicker for
greater freedom of movement, the rain beat upon his back till he was
soaked and sodden and felt streamlets cleaving downward between his
ribs. Now and again he squatted upon his haunches, straining his eyes
to either side. The banks were barely high enough to shield him. At
last he came to a bridge of planks spanning the ditch and was about to
rear himself for another look when he suddenly flattened into the
stream bed, half damming the waters with his body. It was for this he
had so carefully wrapped his fuses. A man passed over him so close
above that he might have touched him. The sentry paused a few paces
beyond and accosted another, then retraced his steps over the bridge.
Evidently this was the picket-line, so Roy wormed his way forward till
he saw the blacker blackness of the mine buildings, then drew himself
dripping out from the bank. He had run the gauntlet safely.
Since evicting the owners, the receiver had erected substantial houses
in place of the tents he had found on the mine. They were of frame and
corrugated-iron, sheathed within and suited to withstand a moderate
exposure. The partners had witnessed the operation from a distance, but
knew nothing about the buildings from close examination.
A thrill of affection for this place wanned the young man. He loved
this old mine. It had realized the dream of his boyhood, and had
answered the hope he had clung to during his long fight against the
Northland. It had come to him when he was disheartened, bringing cheer
and happiness, and had yielded itself like a bride. Now it seemed a
crime to ravage it.
He crept towards the nearest wall and listened. Within was the sound of
voices, though the windows were dark, showing that the inhabitants were
on the alert. Beneath the foundations he made mysterious preparations,
then sought out the office building and cook-house, doing likewise. He
found that back of the seeming repose of the Midas there was a strained
expectancy.
He made his way inside the blacksmith-shop and fumbled for a match.
Just as he was about to strike it he heard the swish of oiled clothes
passing, and waited for some time. Then, igniting his punk and hiding
it under his coat, he opened the door to listen. The wind had died down
now and the rain sang musically upon the metal roofs.
He ran swiftly from house to house, and, when he had done, at the
apices of the triangle he had traced three glowing coals were
sputtering.
The final bolt was launched at last. He stepped down into the ditch and
drew his .45, while to his tautened senses it seemed that the very
hills leaned forth in breathless pause, that the rain had ceased, and
the whole night hushed its thousand voices. He found his lower jaw set
so stiffly that the muscles ached. Levelling his weapon at the eaves of
the bunk-house, he pulled trigger rapidly--the bang, bang, bang, six
times repeated, sounding dull and dead beneath the blanket of mist that
overhung. A shout sounded behind him, and then the shriek of a
Winchester ball close over his head. He turned in time to see another
shot stream out of the darkness, where a sentry was firing at the flash
of his gun, then bent himself double and plunged down the ditch.
With the first impact overhead the men poured forth from their quarters
armed and bristling, to be greeted by a volley of gunshots, the thud of
bullets, and the dwindling whine of spent lead. They leaped from
shelter to find themselves girt with a fitful hoop of fire, for the
"Stranglers" had spread in the arc of a circle and now emptied their
rifles towards the centre. The defenders, however, maintained
surprising order considering the suddenness of their attack, and ran to
join the sentries, whose positions could be determined by the nearer
flashes. The voice of a man in authority shouted loud commands. No
demonstration came from the outer voids, nothing but the wicked streaks
that stabbed the darkness. Then suddenly, behind McNamara's men, the
night glared luridly as though a great furnace-door had opened and then
clanged shut, while with it came a hoarse thudding roar that silenced
the rifle play. They saw the cook-house disrupt itself and disintegrate
into a thousand flying timbers and twisted sheets of tin which soared
upward and outward over their heads and into the night. As the rocking
hills ceased echoing, the sound of the Vigilantes' rifles recurred like
the cracking of dry sticks, then everywhere about the defenders the
earth was lashed by falling debris while the iron roofs rang at the
fusillade.
The blast had come at their very elbows, and they were too dazed and
shaken by it to grasp its significance. Then, before they could realize
what it boded, the depths lit up again till the raindrops were outlined
distinct and glistening like a gossamer veil of silver, while the
office building to their left was ripped and rended and the adjoining
walls leaped out into sudden relief, their shattered windows looking
like ghostly, sightless eyes. The curtain of darkness closed heavier
than velvet, and the men cowered in their tracks, shielding themselves
behind the nearest objects or behind one another's bodies, waiting for
the sky to vomit over them its rain of missiles. Their backs were to
the Vigilantes now, their faces to the centre. Many had dropped their
rifles. The thunder of hoofs and the scream of terrified horses came
from the stables. The cry of a maddened beast is weird and calculated
to curdle the blood at best, but with it arose a human voice, shrieking
from pain and fear of death. A wrenched and doubled mass of zinc had
hurtled out of the heavens and struck some one down. The choking
hoarseness of the man's appeal told the story, and those about him
broke into flight to escape what might follow, to escape this danger
they could not see but which swooped out of the blackness above and
against which there was no defence. They fled only to witness another
and greater light behind them by which they saw themselves running,
falling, grovelling. This time they were hurled from their balance by a
concussion which dwarfed the two preceding ones. Some few stood still,
staring at the rolling smoke-bank as it was revealed by the explosion,
their eyes gleaming white, while others buried their faces in their
hollowed arms as if to shut out the hellish glare, or to shield
themselves from a blow.
Out in the heart of the chaos rang a voice loud and clear:
"We have captured fourteen," another announced, "and there may be more
out yonder in the brush."
Glenister noted with growing surprise that not one of the prisoners
lined up beneath the glaring torches wore the army blue. They were
miners all, or thugs and ruffians gathered from the camp. Where, he
wondered, were the soldiers.
"Didn't you have troops from the barracks to help you?" he asked.
At this the young leader became alarmed. Had this whole attack
miscarried? Had this been no clash with the United States forces, after
all? If so, the news would never reach Washington, and instead of
accomplishing his end, he and his friends had thrust themselves into
the realms of outlawry, where the soldiers could be employed against
them with impunity, where prices would rest upon their heads. Innocent
blood had been shed, court property destroyed. McNamara had them where
he wanted them at last. They were at bay.
The unwounded prisoners were taken to the boundaries of the Midas and
released with such warnings as the imagination of Dextry could conjure
up; then Glenister assembled his men, speaking to them plainly.
It was perhaps four hours after midnight when a man sought him out.
Glenister hurried to the building, which had escaped the shock of the
explosions, and, taking down the receiver, was answered by Cherry
Malotte.
"Thank God, you're safe," she began. "The men have just come in and the
whole town is awake over the riot. They say you've killed ten people in
the fight--is it true?"
He explained to her briefly that all was well, but she broke in:
"Wait, wait! McNamara has called for troops and you'll all be shot. Oh,
what a terrible night it has been! I haven't been to bed. I'm going
mad. Now, listen, carefully--yesterday Helen went with Struve to the
Sign of the Sled and she hasn't come back."
The man at the end of the wire cried out at this, then choked back his
words to hear what followed. His free hand began making strange, futile
motions as though he traced patterns in the air.
"I can't raise the road-house on the wire and--something dreadful has
happened, I know."
"To save you," came Cherry's faint reply. "If you love her, ride fast
to the Sign of the Sled or you'll be too late. The Bronco Kid has gone
there--"
At that name Roy crashed the instrument to its hook and burst out of
the shanty, calling loudly to his men.
"What's up?"
"We've stood by you, Glenister, and you can't quit us like this," said
one, angrily. "The trail to town is good, and we'll take it if you do."
Roy saw they feared he was deserting, feared that he had heard some
alarming rumor of which they did not know.
"We'll let the mine go, boys, for I can't ask you to do what I refuse
to do myself, and yet it's not fear that's sending me. There's a woman
in danger and I MUST go. She courted ruin to save us all, risked her
honor to try and right a wrong--and--I'm afraid of what has happened
while we were fighting here. I don't ask you to stay till I come
back--it wouldn't be square, and you'd better go while you have a
chance. As for me--I gave up the old claim once--I can do it again." He
swung himself to the horse's back, settled into the saddle, and rode
out through the lane of belted men.
CHAPTER XX
IN WHICH THREE GO TO THE SIGN OF THE SLED AND BUT TWO RETURN
As Helen and her companion ascended the mountain, scarred and swept by
the tempest of the previous night, they heard, far below, the swollen
torrent brawling in its bowlder-ridden bed, while behind them the angry
ocean spread southward to a blood-red horizon. Ahead, the bleak
mountains brooded over forbidding valleys; to the west a suffused sun
glared sullenly, painting the high-piled clouds with the gorgeous hues
of a stormy sunset. To Helen the wild scene seemed dyed with the colors
of flame and blood and steel.
"That rain raised the deuce with the trails," said Struve, as they
picked their way past an unsightly "slip" whence a part of the
overhanging mountain, loosened by the deluge, had slid into the gulch.
"Another storm like that would wash out these roads completely."
Even in the daylight it was no easy task to avoid these danger spots,
for the horses floundered on the muddy soil. Vaguely the girl wondered
how she would find her way back in the darkness, as she had planned.
She said little as they approached the road-house, for the thoughts
within her brain had begun to clamor too wildly; but Struve, more
arrogant than ever before, more terrifyingly sure of himself, was
loudly garrulous. As they drew nearer and nearer, the dread that
possessed the girl became of paralyzing intensity. If she should
fail--but she vowed she would not, could not, fail.
They rounded a bend and saw the Sign of the Sled cradled below them
where the trail dipped to a stream which tumbled from the comb above
into the river twisting like a silver thread through the distant
valley. A peeled flag-pole topped by a spruce bough stood in front of
the tavern, while over the door hung a sled suspended from a beam. The
house itself was a quaint structure, rambling and amorphous, from whose
sod roof sprang blooming flowers, and whose high-banked walls were
pierced here and there with sleepy windows. It had been built by a
homesick foreigner of unknown nationality whom the army of "mushers"
who paid for his clean and orderly hospitality had dubbed duly and as a
matter of course a "Swede." When travel had changed to the river trail,
leaving the house lonesome and high as though left by a receding wave,
Struve had taken it over on a debt, and now ran it for the convenience
of a slender traffic, mainly stampeders, who chose the higher route
towards the interior. His hireling spent the idle hours in prospecting
a hungry quartz lead and in doing assessment work on near-by claims.
Shortz took the horses and answered his employer's questions curtly,
flashing a curious look at Helen. Under other conditions the girl would
have been delighted with the place, for this was the quaintest spot she
had found in the north country. The main room held bar and gold-scales,
a rude table, and a huge iron heater, while its walls and ceiling were
sheeted with white cloth so cunningly stitched and tacked that it
seemed a cavern hollowed from chalk. It was filled with trophies of the
hills, stuffed birds and animals, skins and antlers, from which
depended, in careless confusion, dog harness, snow-shoes, guns, and
articles of clothing. A door to the left led into the bunk-room where
travellers had been wont to sleep in tiers three deep. To the rear was
a kitchen and cache, to the right a compartment which Struve called the
art gallery. Here, free reign had been allowed the original owner's
artistic fancies, and he had covered the place with pictures clipped
from gazettes of questionable repute till it was a bewildering
arrangement of pink ladies in tights, pugilists in scanty trunks, prize
bulldogs, and other less moral characters of the sporting world.
"This is probably the worst company you were ever in," Struve observed
to Helen, with a forced attempt at lightness.
"Are there no guests here?" she asked him, her anxiety very near the
surface.
A fire was burning in this pink room where the landlord had begun
spreading the table for two, and its warmth was grateful to the girl.
Her companion, thoroughly at his ease, stretched himself on a
fur-covered couch and smoked.
"Let me see the papers, now, Mr. Struve," she began, but he put her off.
"No, not now. Business must wait on our dinner. Don't spoil our little
party, for there's time enough and to spare."
She arose and went to the window, unable to sit still. Looking down the
narrow gulch she saw that the mountains beyond were indistinct for it
was growing dark rapidly. Dense clouds had rolled up from the east. A
rain-drop struck the glass before her eyes, then another and another,
and the hills grew misty behind the coming shower. A traveller with a
pack on his back hurried around the corner of the building and past her
to the door. At his knock, Struve, who had been watching Helen through
half-shut eyes, arose and went into the other room.
"Thank Heaven, some one has come," she thought. The voices were
deadened to a hum by the sod walls, till that of the stranger raised
itself in such indignant protest that she distinguished his words.
"I don't care if you are closed. I'm tired and there's a storm coming."
This time she heard the landlord's refusal and the miner's angry
profanity. A moment later she saw the traveller plodding up the trail
towards town.
"Oh, that fellow is a tough, and Shortz wouldn't let him in. He's
careful whom he entertains--there are so many bad men roaming the
hills."
The German came in shortly to light the lamp, and, although she asked
no further questions, Helen's uneasiness increased. She half listened
to the stories with which Struve tried to entertain her and ate little
of the excellent meal that was shortly served to them. Struve,
meanwhile, ate and drank almost greedily, and the shadowy, sinister
evening crept along. A strange cowardice had suddenly overtaken the
girl; and if, at this late hour, she could have withdrawn, she would
have done so gladly and gone forth to meet the violence of the tempest.
But she had gone too far for retreat; and realizing that, for the
present, apparent compliance was her wisest resource, she sat quiet,
answering the man with cool words while his eyes grew brighter, his
skin more flushed, his speech more rapid. He talked incessantly and
with feverish gayety, smoking numberless cigarettes and apparently
unconscious of the flight of time. At last he broke off suddenly and
consulted his watch, while Helen remembered that she had not heard
Shortz in the kitchen for a long time. Suddenly Struve smiled on her
peculiarly, with confident cunning. As he leered at her over the
disorder between them he took from his pocket a flat bundle which he
tossed to her.
"I sent him away two hours ago," said Struve, arising as if to come to
her. She shrank back, but he only leaned across, gathered up the four
corners of the tablecloth, and, twisting them together, carried the
whole thing out, the dishes crashing and jangling as he threw his
burden recklessly into the kitchen. Then he returned and stood with his
back to the stove, staring at her while she perused the contents of the
papers, which were more voluminous than she had supposed.
For a long time the girl pored over the documents. The purport of the
papers was only too obvious; and, as she read, the proof of her uncle's
guilt stood out clear and damning. There was no possibility of mistake;
the whole wretched plot stood out plain, its darkest infamies revealed.
"It is here."
"Well, first, no human being could find his way down to the coast in
this tempest; second--but, by-the-way, let me explain something in
those papers while I think of it." He spoke casually and stepped
forward, reaching for the package, which she was about to give up, when
something prompted her to snatch it behind her back; and it was well
she did, for his hand was but a few inches away. He was no match for
her quickness, however, and she glided around the table, thrusting the
papers into the front of her dress. The sudden contact with Cherry's
revolver gave her a certain comfort. She spoke now with determination.
"I intend to leave here at once. Will you bring my horse? Very well, I
shall do it myself."
She turned, but his indolence vanished like a flash, and springing in
front of the door he barred her way.
"Hold on, my lady. You ought to understand without my saying any more.
Why did I bring you here? Why did I plan this little party? Why did I
send that man away? Just to give you the proof of my complicity in a
crime, I suppose. Well, hardly. You won't leave here to-night. And when
you do, you won't carry those papers--my own safety depends on that and
I am selfish, so don't get me started. Listen!" They caught the wail of
the night crying as though hungry for sacrifice. "No, you'll stay here
and--"
He broke off abruptly, for Helen had stepped to the telephone and taken
down the receiver. He leaped, snatched it from her, and then, tearing
the instrument loose from the wall, raised it above his head, dashed it
upon the floor, and sprang towards her, but she wrenched herself free
and fled across the room. The man's white hair was wildly tumbled, his
face was purple, and his neck and throat showed swollen, throbbing
veins. He stood still, however, and his lips cracked into his
ever-present, cautious smile.
"Now, don't let's fight about this. It's no use, for I've played to
win. You have your proof--now I'll have my price--or else I'll take it.
Think over which it will be, while I lock up."
Far down the mountain-side a man was urging a broken pony recklessly
along the trail. The beast was blown and spent, its knees weak and
bending, yet the rider forced it as though behind him yelled a thousand
devils, spurring headlong through gully and ford, up steep slopes and
down invisible ravines. Sometimes the animal stumbled and fell with its
master, sometimes they arose together, but the man was heedless of all
except his haste, insensible to the rain which smote him blindingly,
and to the wind which seized him savagely upon the ridges, or gasped at
him in the gullies with exhausted malice. At last he gained the plateau
and saw the road-house light beneath, so drove his heels into the
flanks of the wind-broken creature, which lunged forward gamely. He
felt the pony rear and drop away beneath him, pawing and scrambling,
and instinctively kicked his feet free from the stirrups, striving to
throw himself out of the saddle and clear of the thrashing hoofs. It
seemed that he turned over in the air before something smote him and he
lay still, his gaunt, dark face upturned to the rain, while about him
the storm screamed exultantly.
The moment Struve disappeared into the outer room Helen darted to the
window. It was merely a single sash, nailed fast and immovable, but
seizing one of the little stools beside the stove she thrust it through
the glass, letting in a smother of wind and water. Before she could
escape, Struve bounded into the room, his face livid with anger, his
voice hoarse and furious.
"Don't dare to stop me." She moved towards the door, motioning him to
retreat before her, and he obeyed, recognizing the danger of her
coolness. She did not note the calculating treachery of his glance,
however, nor fathom the purposes he had in mind.
Helen watched her captive closely as he backed through the door before
her, for she dared not lose sight of him until free. The middle room
was lighted by a glass lamp on the bar and its rays showed that the
front-door was secured by a large iron bolt. She thanked Heaven there
was no lock and key.
Struve had retreated until his back was to the counter, offering no
word, making no move, but the darting brightness of his eyes showed
that he was alert and planning. But when the door behind Helen, urged
by the wind through the broken casement, banged to, the man made his
first lightning-like sign. He dashed the lamp to the floor, where it
burst like an eggshell, and darkness leaped into the room as an animal
pounces. Had she been calmer or had time for an instant's thought Helen
would have hastened back to the light, but she was midway to her
liberty and actuated by the sole desire to break out into the open air,
so plunged forward. Without warning, she was hurled from her feet by a
body which came out of the darkness upon her. She fired the little gun,
but Struve's arms closed about her, the weapon was wrenched from her
hand, and she found herself fighting against him, breast to breast,
with the fury of desperation. His wine-burdened breath beat into her
face and she felt herself bound to him as though by hoops, while the
touch of his cheek against hers turned her into a terrified, insensate
animal, which fought with every ounce of its strength and every nerve
of its body. She screamed once, but it was not like the cry of a woman.
Then the struggle went on in silence and utter blackness, Strove
holding her like a gorilla till she grew faint and her head began to
whirl, while darting lights drove past her eyes and there was the roar
of a cataract in her ears. She was a strong girl, and her ripe young
body, untried until this moment, answered in every fibre, so that she
wrestled with almost a man's strength and he had hard shift to hold
her. But so violent an encounter could not last. Helen felt herself
drifting free from the earth and losing grip of all things tangible,
when at last they tripped and fell against the inner door. This gave
way, and at the same moment the man's strength departed as though it
were a thing of darkness and dared not face the light that streamed
over them. She tore herself from his clutch and staggered into the
supper-room, her loosened hair falling in a gleaming torrent about her
shoulders, while he arose from his knees and came towards her again,
gasping:
It had happened like a flash of light, and although Helen felt, rather
than heard, the shot and saw her assailant fall, she did not realize
the meaning of it till a drift of powder smoke assailed her nostrils.
Even so, she experienced no shock nor horror of the sight. On the
contrary, a savage joy at the spectacle seized her and she stood still,
leaning slightly forward, staring at it almost gloatingly, stood so
till she heard her name called, "Helen, little sister!" and, turning,
saw her brother in the window.
That which he witnessed in her face he had seen before in the faces of
men locked close with a hateful death and from whom all but the most
elemental passions had departed--but he had never seen a woman bear the
marks till now. No artifice nor falsity was there, nothing but the
crudest, intensest feeling, which many people live and die without
knowing. There are few who come to know the great primitive, passionate
longings. But in this black night, fighting in defence of her most
sacred self, this girl's nature had been stripped to its purely savage
elements. As Glenister had predicted, Helen at last had felt and
yielded to irresistibly powerful impulse.
She nodded and tried to speak, but began to shiver and sob instead.
"Unlock the door," he begged her. "I'm hurt, and I must get in."
When the Kid had hobbled into the room, she pressed him to her and
stroked his matted head, regardless of his muddy, soaking garments.
"I must look at him. He may not be badly hurt," said the Kid.
"Don't touch him!" She followed, nevertheless, and stood near by while
her brother examined his victim. Struve was breathing, and, discovering
this, the others lifted him with difficulty to the couch.
The Kid would not hear of her going for help till the storm abated or
daylight came, insisting that the trails were too treacherous and that
no time could be saved by doing so. Thus they waited for the dawn. At
last they heard the wounded man faintly calling. He spoke to Helen
hoarsely. There was no malice, only fear, in his tones:
"I said this was my madness--and I got what I deserved, but I'm going
to die. O God--I'm going to die and I'm afraid." He moaned till the
Bronco Kid hobbled in, glaring with unquenched hatred.
"Yes, you're going to die and I did it. Be game, can't you? I sha'n't
let her go for help until daylight."
Helen forced her brother back to his couch, and returned to help the
wounded man, who grew incoherent and began to babble.
A little later, when the Kid seemed stronger and his head clearer,
Helen ventured to tell him of their uncle's villany and of the proof
she held, with her hope of restoring justice. She told him of the
attack planned that very night and of the danger which threatened the
miners. He questioned her closely and, realizing the bearing of her
story, crept to the door, casting the wind like a hound.
"We'll have to risk it," said he. "The wind is almost gone and it's not
long till daylight."
She pleaded to go alone, but he was firm. "I'll never leave you again,
and, moreover, I know the lower trail quite well. We'll go down the
gulch to the valley and reach town that way. It's farther but it's not
so dangerous."
"I can if you'll tie me into the saddle. Come, get the horses."
It was still pitchy dark and the rain was pouring, but the wind only
sighed weakly as though tired by its violence when she helped the
Bronco into his saddle. The effort wrenched a groan from him, but he
insisted upon her tying his feet beneath the horse's belly, saying that
the trail was rough and he could take no chance of falling again; so,
having performed the last services she might for Struve, she mounted
her own animal and allowed it to pick its way down the steep descent
behind her brother, who swayed and lurched drunkenly in his seat,
gripping the horn before him with both hands.
They had been gone perhaps a half-hour when another horse plunged
furiously out of the darkness and halted before the road-house door.
Its rider, mud-stained and dishevelled, flung himself in mad haste to
the ground and bolted in through the door. He saw the signs of
confusion in the outer room, chairs upset and broken, the table wedged
against the stove, and before the counter a shattered lamp in a pool of
oil. He called loudly, but, receiving no answer, snatched a light
which, he found burning and ran to the door at his left. Nothing
greeted him but the empty tiers of bunks. Turning, he crossed to the
other side and burst through. Another lamp was lighted beside the couch
where Struve lay, breathing heavily, his lids half closed over his
staring eyes. Roy noted the pool of blood at his feet and the broken
window; then, setting down his lamp, he leaned over the man and spoke
to him.
"I'm dying--oh, I'm dying." Roy raised the sick man up and thrust his
own face before his eyes.
"The Kid took her away. The Kid shot me," and then his voice rose till
it flooded the room with terror. "The Kid shot me and I'm dying." He
coughed blood to his lips, at which Roy laid him back and stood up. So
there was no mistake, after all, and he had arrived too late. This was
the Kid's revenge. This was how he struck. Lacking courage to face a
man's level eyes, he possessed the foulness to prey upon a woman. Roy
felt a weakening physical sickness sweep over him till his eye fell
upon a sodden garment which Helen had removed from her brother's
shoulders and replaced with a dry one. He snatched it from the floor
and in a sudden fury felt it come apart in his hands like wet
tissue-paper.
He found himself out in the rain, scanning the trampled soil by light
of his lamp, and discerned tracks which the drizzle had not yet erased.
He reasoned mechanically that the two riders could have no great start
of him, so strode out beyond the house to see if they had gone farther
into the hills. There were no tracks here, therefore they must have
doubled back towards town. It did not occur to him that they might have
left the beaten path and followed down the little creek to the river;
but, replacing the light where he had found it, he remounted and lashed
his horse into a stiff canter up towards the divide that lay between
him and the city. The story was growing plainer to him, though as yet
he could not piece it all together. Its possibilities stabbed him with
such horror that he cried out aloud and beat his steed into faster time
with both hands and feet. To think of those two ruffians fighting over
this girl as though she were the spoils of pillage! He must overtake
the Kid--he WOULD! The possibility that he might not threw him into
such ungovernable mental chaos that he was forced to calm himself. Men
went mad that way. He could not think of it. That gasping creature in
the road-house spoke all too well of the Bronco's determination. And
yet, who of those who had known the Kid in the past would dream that
his vileness was so utter as this?
Away to the right, hidden among the shadowed hills, his friends rested
themselves for the coming battle, waiting impatiently his return, and
timing it to the rising sun. Down in the valley to his left were the
two he followed, while he, obsessed and unreasoning, now cursing like a
madman, now grim and silent, spurred southward towards town and into
the ranks of his enemies.
CHAPTER XXI
THE HAMMER-LOCK
Day was breaking as Glenister came down the mountain. With the first
light he halted to scan the trail, and having no means of knowing that
the fresh tracks he found were not those of the two riders he followed,
he urged his lathered horse ahead till he became suddenly conscious
that he was very tired and had not slept for two days and nights. The
recollection did not reassure the young man, for his body was a weapon
which must not fail in the slightest measure now that there was work to
do. Even the unwelcome speculation upon his physical handicap offered
relief, however, from the agony which fed upon him whenever he thought
of Helen in the gambler's hands. Meanwhile, the horse, groaning at his
master's violence, plunged onward towards the roofs of Nome, now
growing gray in the first dawn.
It seemed years since Roy had seen the sunlight, for this night,
burdened with suspense, had been endlessly long. His body was faint
beneath the strain, and yet he rode on and on, tired, dogged, stony,
his eyes set towards the sea, his mind a storm of formless, whirling
thoughts, beneath which was an undeviating, implacable determination.
He knew now that he had sacrificed all hope of the Midas, and likewise
the hope of Helen was gone; in fact, he began to realize dimly that
from the beginning he had never had the possibility of winning her,
that she had never been destined for him, and that his love for her had
been sent as a light by which he was to find himself. He had failed
everywhere, he had become an outlaw, he had fought and gone down,
certain only of his rectitude and the mastery of his unruly spirit. Now
the hour had come when he would perform his last mission, deriving
therefrom that satisfaction which the gods could not deny. He would
have his vengeance.
The scheme took form without conscious effort on his part and embraced
two things--the death of the gambler and a meeting with McNamara. Of
the former, he had no more doubt than that the sun rising there would
sink in the west. So well confirmed was this belief that the details
did not engage his thought; but on the result of the other encounter he
speculated with some interest. From the first McNamara had been a
riddle to him, and mystery breeds curiosity. His blind, instinctive
hatred of the man had assumed the proportions of a mania; but as to
what the outcome would be when they met face to face, fate alone could
tell. Anyway, McNamara should never have Helen--Roy believed his
mission covered that point as well as her deliverance from the Bronco
Kid. When he had finished--he would pay the price. If he had the luck
to escape, he would go back to his hills and his solitude; if he did
not, his future would be in the hands of his enemies.
He entered the silent streets unobserved, for the mists were heavy and
low. Smoke columns arose vertically in the still air. The rain had
ceased, having beaten down the waves which rumbled against the beach,
filling the streets with their subdued thunder. A ship, anchored in the
offing, had run in from the lee of Sledge Island with the first lull,
while midway to the shore a tender was rising and falling, its oars
flashing like the silvered feelers of a sea insect crawling upon the
surface of the ocean.
In dressing for the battle at the Midas on the previous night he had
replaced his leather boots with "mukluks," which are waterproof, light,
and pliable footgear made from the skin of seal and walrus. He was thus
able to move as noiselessly as though in moccasins. Finding neither
pencil nor paper in his pocket, he tried the outer door of the office,
to find it unlocked. He stepped inside and listened, then moved towards
a table on which were writing materials, but in doing so heard a rustle
in Struve's private office. Evidently his soft soles had not disturbed
the man inside. Roy was about to tiptoe out as he had come when the
hidden man cleared his throat. It is in these involuntary sounds that
the voice retains its natural quality more distinctly even than in
speaking, A strange eagerness grew in Glenister's face and he
approached the partition stealthily. It was of wood and glass, the
panes clouded and opaque to a height of some six feet; but stepping
upon a chair he peered into the room beyond. A man knelt in a litter of
papers before the open safe, its drawers and compartments removed and
their contents scattered. The watcher lowered himself, drew his gun,
and laid soft hand upon the door-knob, turning the latch with firm
fingers. His vengeance had come to meet him.
After lying in wait during the long night, certain that the
Vigilantes would spring his trap, McNamara was astounded at news of the
battle at the Midas and of Glenister's success. He stormed and cursed
his men as cowards. The Judge became greatly exercised over this new
development, which, coupled with his night of long anxiety, reduced him
to a pitiful hysteria.
"Ay, we can use them now." Thereupon McNamara roused the commanding
officer at the post and requested him to accoutre a troop and have them
ready to march at daylight, then bestirred the Judge to start the
wheels of his court and invoke this military aid in regular fashion.
"Make it all a matter of record," he said. "We want to keep our skirts
clear from now on."
"But the towns-people are against us," quavered Stillman. "They'll tear
us to pieces."
"Let 'em try. Once I get my hand on the ringleader, the rest may riot
and be damned."
Although he had made less display than had the Judge, the receiver was
no less deeply worried about Helen, of whom no news came. His jealousy,
fanned to red heat by the discovery of her earlier defection, was
enhanced fourfold by the thought of this last adventure. Something told
him there was treachery afoot, and when she did not return at dawn he
began to fear that she had cast in her lot with the rioters. This
aroused a perfect delirium of doubt and anger till he reasoned further
that Struve, having gone with her, must also be a traitor. He
recognized the menace in this fact, knowing the man's venality, so
began to reckon carefully its significance. What could Struve do? What
proof had he? McNamara started, and, seizing his hat, hurried straight
to the lawyer's office and let himself in with the key he carried. It
was light enough for him to decipher the characters on the safe lock as
he turned the combination, so he set to work scanning the endless
bundles within, hoping that after all the man had taken with him no
incriminating evidence. Once the searcher paused at some fancied sound,
but when nothing came of it drew his revolver and laid it before him
just inside the safe door and close beneath his hand, continuing to run
through the documents while his uneasiness increased. He had been
engaged so for some time when he heard the faintest creak at his back,
too slight to alarm and just sufficient to break his tension and cause
him to jerk his head about. Framed in the open door stood Roy Glenister
watching him.
The two men stared at each other for a time, silent and malignant,
their glances meeting like blades; in the older man's face a look of
defiance, in the younger's a dogged and grim-purposed enmity.
McNamara's first perturbation left him calm, alert, dangerous; whereas
the continued contemplation of his enemy worked in Glenister to destroy
his composure, and his purpose blazed forth unhidden.
He stood there unkempt and soiled, the clean sweep of jaw and throat
overgrown with a three days' black stubble, his hair wet and matted,
his whole left side foul with clay where he had fallen in the darkness.
A muddy red streak spread downward from a cut above his temple, beneath
his eyes were sagging folds, while the flicker at his mouth corners
betrayed the high nervous pitch to which he was keyed.
"I have come for the last act, McNamara; now we'll have it out, man to
man."
The politician shrugged his shoulders. "You have the drop on me. I am
unarmed." At which the miner's face lighted fiercely and he chuckled.
"Ah, that's almost too good to be true. I have dreamed about such a
thing and I have been hungry to feel your throat since the first time I
saw you. It's grown on me till shooting wouldn't satisfy me. Ever had
the feeling? Well, I'm going to choke the life out of you with my bare
hands."
"I wouldn't advise you to try it. I have lived longer than you and I
was never beaten, but I know the feeling you speak about. I have it
now."
His eyes roved rapidly up and down the other's form, noting the lean
thighs and close-drawn belt which lent the appearance of spareness,
belied only by the neck and shoulders. He had beaten better men, and he
reasoned that if it came to a physical test in these cramped quarters
his own great weight would more than offset any superior agility the
miner might possess. The longer he looked the more he yielded to his
hatred of the man before him, and the more cruelly he longed to satisfy
it.
"Take off your coat," said Glenister. "Now turn around. All right! I
just wanted to see if you were lying about your gun."
Glenister laid his six-shooter upon the safe and slipped off his own
wet garment. The difference was more marked now and the advantage more
strongly with the receiver. Though they had avoided allusion to it,
each knew that this fight had nothing to do with the Midas and each
realized whence sprang their fierce enmity. And it was meet that they
should come together thus. It had been the one certain and logical
event which they had felt inevitably approaching from long back. And it
was fitting, moreover, that they should fight alone and unwitnessed,
armed only with the weapons of the wilderness, for they were both of
the far, free lands, were both of the fighter's type, and had both
warred for the first, great prize.
They met ferociously. McNamara aimed a fearful blow, but Glenister met
him squarely, beating him off cleverly, stepping in and out, his arms
swinging loosely from his shoulders like whalebone withes tipped with
lead. He moved lightly, his footing made doubly secure by reason of his
soft-soled mukluks. Recognizing his opponent's greater weight, he
undertook merely to stop the headlong rushes and remain out of reach as
long as possible. He struck the politician fairly in the mouth so that
the man's head snapped back and his fists went wild, then, before the
arms could grasp him, the miner had broken ground and whipped another
blow across; but McNamara was a boxer himself, so covered and blocked
it. The politician spat through his mashed lips and rushed again,
sweeping his opponent from his feet. Again Glenister's fist shot
forward like a lump of granite, but the other came on head down and the
blow finished too high, landing on the big man's brow. A sudden darting
agony paralyzed Roy's hand, and he realized that he had broken the
metacarpal bones and that henceforth it would be useless. Before he
could recover, McNamara had passed under his extended arm and seized
him by the middle, then, thrusting his left leg back of Roy's, he
whirled him from his balance, flinging him clear and with resistless
force. It seemed that a fatal fall must follow, but the youth squirmed
catlike in the air, landing with set muscles which rebounded like
rubber. Even so, the receiver was upon him before he could rise,
reaching for the young man's throat with his heavy hands. Roy
recognized the fatal "strangle hold," and, seizing his enemy's wrists,
endeavored to tear them apart, but his left hand was useless, so with a
mighty wrench he freed himself, and, locked in each other's arms, the
men strained and swayed about the office till their neck veins were
bursting, their muscles paralyzed.
Men may fight duels calmly, may shoot or parry or thrust with cold
deliberation; but when there comes the jar of body to body, the sweaty
contact of skin to skin, the play of iron muscles, the painful gasp of
exhaustion--then the mind goes skittering back into its dark recesses
while every venomous passion leaps forth from its hiding-place and
joins in the horrid war.
They tripped across the floor, crashing into the partition, which
split, showering them with glass. They fell and rolled in it; then, by
consent, wrenched themselves apart and rose, eye to eye, their jaws
hanging, their lungs wheezing, their faces trickling blood and sweat.
Roy's left hand pained him excruciatingly, while McNamara's macerated
lips had turned outward in a hideous pout. They crouched so for an
instant, cruel, bestial--then clinched again. The office-fittings were
wrecked utterly and the room became a litter of ruins. The men's
garments fell away till their breasts were bare and their arms swelled
white and knotted through the rags. They knew no pain, their bodies
were insensate mechanisms.
Gradually the older man's face was beaten into a shapeless mass by the
other's cunning blows, while Glenister's every bone was wrenched and
twisted under his enemy's terrible onslaughts. The miner's chief
effort, it is true, was to keep his feet and to break the man's
embraces. Never had he encountered one whom he could not beat by sheer
strength till he met this great, snarling creature who worried him
hither and yon as though he were a child. Time and again Roy beat upon
the man's face with the blows of a sledge. No rules governed this
solitary combat; the men were deaf to all but the roaring in their
ears, blinded to all but hate, insensible to everything but the blood
mania. Their trampling feet caused the building to rumble and shake as
though some monster were running amuck.
Out of the fogs which clung so thickly to the tundra there came two
other horses, distorted and unreal, on one a girl, on the other a
figure of pain and tragedy, a grotesque creature that swayed stiffly to
the motion of its steed, its face writhed into lines of suffering, its
hands clutching cantle and horn.
It was as though Fate, with invisible touch, were setting her stage for
the last act of this play, assembling the principals close to the
Golden Sands where first they had made entrance.
The man and the girl came face to face with the Judge and marshal, who
cried out upon seeing them, but as they reined in, out from the stairs
beside them a man shot amid clatter and uproar.
The gambler turned towards the three men who were hurrying from the
beach, and, recognizing Wheaton, called to him: "Untie my feet! Cut the
ropes! Quick!"
"What's the trouble?" the lawyer asked, but on hearing Glenister's name
bounded after the Judge, leaving one of his companions to free the
rider. They could hear the fight now, and all crowded towards the door,
Helen with her brother, in spite of his warning to stay behind.
She never remembered how she climbed those stairs, for she was borne
along by that hypnotic power which drags one to behold a catastrophe in
spite of his will. Reaching the room, she stood appalled; for the group
she had joined watched two raging things that rushed at each other with
inhuman cries, ragged, bleeding, fighting on a carpet of debris. Every
loose and breakable thing had been ground to splinters as though by
iron slugs in a whirling cylinder.
To this day, from Dawson to the Straits, from Unga to the Arctics, men
tell of the combat wherever they foregather at flaring camp-fires or in
dingy bunkhouses; and although some scout the tale, there are others
who saw it and can swear to its truth. These say that the encounter was
like the battle of bull moose in the rutting season, though more
terrible, averring that two men like these had never been known in the
land since the days of Vitus Bering and his crew; for their rancor had
swollen till at feel of each other's flesh they ran mad and felt
superhuman strength. It is true, at any rate, that neither was
conscious of the filling room, nor the cries of the crowd, even when
the marshal forced himself through the wedged door and fell upon the
nearest, which was Glenister. He came at an instant when the two had
paused at arm's-length, glaring with rage-drunken eyes, gasping the
labored breath back into their lungs.
With a fling of his long arms the young man hurled the intruder aside
so violently that his head struck the iron safe and he collapsed
insensible. Then, without apparent notice of the interruption, the
fight went on. It was seen during this respite that McNamara's mouth
was running water as though he were deathly sick, while every retch
brought forth a groan. Helen heard herself crying: "Stop them! Stop
them!" But no one seemed capable of interference. She heard her brother
muttering and his breath coming heavily like that of the fighters, his
body swaying in time to theirs. The Judge was ashy, imbecile, helpless.
McNamara's distress was patent to his antagonist, who advanced upon him
with the hunger of promised victory; but the young man's muscles obeyed
his commands sluggishly, his ribs seemed broken, his back was weak, and
on the inner side of his legs the flesh was quivering. As they came
together the boss reached up his right hand and caught the miner by the
face, burying thumb and fingers crab like into his cheeks, forcing his
slack jaws apart, thrusting his head backward, while he centred every
ounce of his strength in the effort to maim. Roy felt the flesh giving
way and flung himself backward to break the hold, whereupon the other
summoned his wasting energy and plunged towards the safe, where lay the
revolver. Instinct warned Glenister of treachery, told him that the man
had sought this last resource to save himself, and as he saw him turn
his back and reach for the weapon, the youth leaped like a panther,
seizing him about the waist, grasping McNamara's wrist with his right
hand. For the first time during the combat they were not face to face,
and on the instant Roy realized the advantage given him through the
other's perfidy, realized the wrestler's hold that was his, and knew
that the moment of victory was come.
The telling takes much time, but so quickly had these things happened
that the footsteps of the soldiers had not yet reached the door when
the men were locked beside the safe.
Of what happened next many garbled accounts have gone forth, for of all
those present, none but the Bronco Kid knew its significance and ever
recounted the truth concerning it. Some claim that the younger man was
seized with a fear of death which multiplied his enormous strength,
others that the power died in his adversary as reward for his treason;
but it was not so.
No sooner had Roy encompassed McNamara's waist from the rear than he
slid his damaged hand up past the other's chest and around the back of
his neck, thus bringing his own left arm close under his enemy's left
armpit, wedging the receiver's head forward, while with his other hand
he grasped the politician's right wrist close to the revolver, thus
holding him in a grasp which could not be broken. Now came the test.
The two bodies set themselves rocklike and rigid. There was no lunging
about. Calling up the final atom of his strength, Glenister bore
backward with his right arm and it became a contest for the weapon
which, clutched in the two hands, swayed back and forth or darted up
and down, the fury of resistance causing it to trace formless patterns
in the air with its muzzle. McNamara shook himself, but he was close
against the safe and could not escape, his head bowed forward by the
lock of the miner's left arm, and so he strained till the breath
clogged in his throat. Despite the grievous toil his right hand moved
back slightly. His feet shifted a bit, while the blood seemed bursting
from his eyes, but he found that the long fingers encircling his wrist
were like gyves weighted with the strength of the hills and the
irresistible vigor of youth which knew no defeat. Slowly, inch by inch,
the great man's arm was dragged back, down past his side, while the
strangling labor of his breath showed at what awful cost. The muzzle of
the gun described a semicircle and the knotted hands began to travel
towards the left, more rapidly now, across his broad back. Still he
struggled and wrenched, but uselessly. He strove to fire the weapon,
but his fingers were woven about it so that the hammer would not work.
Then the miner began forcing upward.
The white skin beneath the men's strips of clothing was stretched over
great knots and ridges which sunk and swelled and quivered. Helen,
watching in silent terror, felt her brother sinking his fingers into
her shoulder and heard him panting, his face ablaze with excitement,
while she became conscious that he had repeated time and again:
By now McNamara's arm was bent and cramped upon his back, and then they
saw Glenister's shoulder dip, his elbow come closer to his side, and
his body heave in one final terrific effort as though pushing a heavy
weight. In the silence something snapped like a stick. There came a
deafening report and the scream of a strong man overcome with agony.
McNamara went to his knees and sagged forward on to his face as though
every bone in his huge bulk had turned to water, while his master
reeled back against the opposite wall, his heels dragging in the
litter, bringing up with outflung arms as though fearful of falling,
swaying, blind, exhausted, his face blackened by the explosion of the
revolver, yet grim with the light of victory.
Judge Stillman shouted, hysterically:
It was the miner's first realization that others were there. Raising
his head he stared at the faces close against the partition, then
groaned the words:
CHAPTER XXII
Soldiers seized the young man, who made no offer at resistance, and the
room became a noisy riot. Crowds surged up from below, clamoring,
questioning, till some one at the head of the stairs shouted down:
Then one of the receiver's faction called: "Let's hang him. He killed
ten of our men last night." Helen winced, but Stillman, roused to a
sort of malevolent courage, quieted the angry voices.
"Officer, hold these people back. I'll attend to this man. The law's in
my hands and I'll make him answer."
McNamara reared himself groaning from the floor, his right arm swinging
from the shoulder strangely loose and distorted, with palm twisted
outward, while his battered face was hideous with pain and defeat. He
growled broken maledictions at his enemy.
Roy, meanwhile, said nothing, for as the savage lust died in him he
realized that the whirling faces before him were the faces of his
enemies, that the Bronco Kid was still at large, and that his vengeance
was but half completed. His knees were bending, his limbs were like
leaden bars, his chest a furnace of coals. As he reeled down the lane
of human forms, supported by his guards, he came abreast of the girl
and her companion and paused, clearing his vision slowly.
"Ah, there you are!" he said, thickly, to the gambler, and began to
wrestle with his captors, baring his teeth in a grimace of painful
effort; but they held him as easily as though he were a child and drew
him forward, his body sagging limply, his face turned back over his
shoulder.
They had him near the door when Wheaton barred their way, crying: "Hold
up a minute--it's all right, Roy--"
But Wheaton held his place while the room centred its eyes upon him,
scenting some unexpected denouement. He saw it, and in concession to a
natural vanity and dramatic instinct, he threw back his head and
stuffed his hands into his coat-pockets while the crowd waited. He
grinned insolently at the Judge and the receiver.
The uproar of the past few minutes had brought men running from every
direction till, finding no room on the stairs, they had massed in the
street below while the word flew from lip to lip concerning this
closing scene of their drama, the battle at the Midas, the great fight
up-stairs, and the arrest by the 'Frisco deputies. Like Sindbad's
genie, a wondrous tale took shape from the rumors. Men shouldered one
another eagerly for a glimpse of the actors, and when the press
streamed out, greeted it with volleys of questions. They saw the
unconscious marshal borne forth, followed by the old Judge, now a
palsied wretch, slinking beside his captor, a very shell of a man at
whom they jeered. When McNamara lurched into view, an image of defeat
and chagrin, their voices rose menacingly. The pack was turning and he
knew it, but, though racked and crippled, he bent upon them a visage so
full of defiance and contemptuous malignity that they hushed
themselves, and their final picture of him was that of a big man
downed, but unbeaten to the last. They began to cry for Glenister, so
that when he loomed in the doorway, a ragged, heroic figure, his heavy
shock low over his eyes, his unshaven face aggressive even in its
weariness, his corded arms and chest bare beneath the fluttering
streamers, the street broke into wild cheering. Here was a man of their
own, a son of the Northland who labored and loved and fought in a way
they understood, and he had come into his due.
But Roy, dumb and listless, staggered up the street, refusing the help
of every man except Wheaton. He heard his companion talking, but
grasped only that the attorney gloated and gloried.
"We have whipped them, boy. We have whipped them at their own game.
Arrested in their very door-yards--cited for contempt of court--that's
what they are. They disobeyed those other writs, and so I got them."
"Yes, I saw you do it! Ugh! it was an awful thing. I couldn't prove
conspiracy, but they'll go to jail for a little while just the same,
and we have broken the ring."
"It snapped at the shoulder," the other continued, dully, "just like a
shovel handle. I felt it--but he tried to kill me and I had to do it."
The attorney took Roy to his cabin and dressed his wounds, talking
incessantly the while, but the boy was like a sleep-walker, displaying
no elation, no excitement, no joy of victory. At last Wheaton broke out:
"Cheer up! Why, man, you act like a loser. Don't you realize that we've
won? Don't you understand that the Midas is yours? And the whole world
with it?"
"Won?" echoed the miner. "What do you know about it, Bill? The
Midas--the world--what good are they? You're wrong. I've
lost--yes--I've lost everything she taught me, and by some damned trick
of Fate she was there to see me do it. Now, go away; I want to sleep."
He sank upon the bed with its tangle of blankets and was unconscious
before the lawyer had covered him over.
There he lay like a dead man till late in the afternoon, when Dextry
and Slapjack came in from the hills, answering Wheaton's call, and fell
upon him hungrily. They shook Roy into consciousness with joyous riot,
pommelling him with affectionate roughness till he rose and joined with
them stiffly. He bathed and rubbed the soreness from his muscles,
emerging physically fit. They made him recount his adventures to the
tiniest detail, following his description of the fight with absorbed
interest till Dextry broke into mournful complaint:
"I'd have give my half of the Midas to see you bust him. Lord, I'd have
screeched with soopreme delight at that."
"Why didn't you gouge his eyes out when you had him crippled?"
questioned Slapjack, vindictively. "I'd 'a' done it."
"How did it sound when she busted?" insisted the morbid Simms, but
Glenister refused to discuss his combat.
"Come on, Slap," said the old prospector, "let's go down-town. I'm so
het up I can't set still, an' besides, mebbe we can get the story the
way it really happened, from somebody who ain't bound an' gagged an'
chloroformed by such unbecomin' modesties. Roy, don't never go into
vawdyville with them personal episodes, because they read about as
thrillin' as a cook-book. Why, say, I've had the story of that fight
from four different fellers already, none of which was within four
blocks of the scrimmage, an' they're all diff'rent an' all better 'n
your account."
Now that Glenister's mind had recovered some of its poise he realized
what he had done.
Some one knocked, and he opened the door to admit the Bronco Kid and
Helen.
"Wait a minute, old man," said the Kid. "I'm here as a friend." The
gambler handled himself with difficulty, offering in explanation:
"He ought to be in bed now, but he wouldn't let me come alone, and I
could not wait," the girl supplemented, while her eyes avoided
Glenister's in strange hesitation.
"I'm her brother," announced the Bronco Kid. "I've known it for a long
time, but I--I--well, you understand I couldn't let her know. All I can
say is, I've gambled square till the night I played you, and I was as
mad as a dervish then, blaming you for the talk I'd heard. Last night I
learned by chance about Struve and Helen and got to the road-house in
time to save her. I'm sorry I didn't kill him." His long white fingers
writhed about the arm of his chair at the memory.
"No. The doctors have brought him in and he'll get well. He's like half
the men in Alaska--here because the sheriffs back home couldn't shoot
straight. There's something else. I'm not a good talker, but give me
time and I'll manage it so you'll understand. I tried to keep Helen
from coming on this errand, but she said it was the square thing and
she knows better than I. It's about those papers she brought in last
spring. She was afraid you might consider her a party to the deal, but
you don't, do you?" He glared belligerently, and Roy replied, with
fervor:
"Well, she learned the other day that those documents told the whole
story and contained enough proof to break up this conspiracy and
convict the Judge and McNamara and all the rest, but Struve kept the
bundle in his safe and wouldn't give it up without a price. That's why
she went away with him--She thought it was right, and--that's all. But
it seems Wheaton had succeeded in another way. Now, I'm coming to the
point. The Judge and McNamara are arrested for contempt of court and
they're as good as convicted; you have recovered your mine, and these
men are disgraced. They will go to jail--"
"Yes, for six months, perhaps," broke in the other, hotly, "but what
does that amount to? There never was a bolder crime consummated nor one
more cruelly unjust. They robbed a realm and pillaged its people, they
defiled a court and made Justice a wanton, they jailed good men and
sent others to ruin; and for this they are to suffer--how? By a paltry
fine or a short imprisonment, perhaps, by an ephemeral disgrace and the
loss of their stolen goods. Contempt of court is the accusation, but
you might as well convict a murderer for breach of the peace. We've
thrown them off, it's true, and they won't trouble us again, but
they'll never have to answer for their real infamy. That will go
unpunished while their lawyers quibble over technicalities and rules of
court. I guess it's true that there isn't any law of God or man north
of Fifty-three; but if there is justice south of that mark, those
people will answer for conspiracy and go to the penitentiary."
"You make it hard for me to say what I want to. I am almost sorry we
came, for I am not cunning with words, and I don't know that you'll
understand," said the Bronco Kid, gravely, "We looked at it this way:
you have had your victory, you have beaten your enemies against odds,
you have recovered your mine, and they are disgraced. To men like them
that last will outlive and outweigh all the rest; but the Judge is our
uncle and our blood runs in his veins. He took Helen when she was a
baby and was a father to her in his selfish way, loving her as best he
knew how. And she loves him."
And then Helen spoke for the first time eagerly, taking a packet from
her bosom as she began:
"This will tell the whole wretched story, Mr. Glenister, and show the
plot in all its vileness. It's hard for me to betray my uncle, but this
proof is yours by right to use as you see fit, and I can't keep it."
"Do you mean that this evidence will show all that? And you're going to
give it to me because you think it is your duty?"
"It belongs to you. I have no choice. But what I came for was to plead
and to ask a little mercy for my uncle, who is an old, old man, and
very weak. This will kill him."
He saw that her eyes were swimming while the little chin quivered ever
so slightly and her pale cheeks were flushed. There rose in him the old
wild desire to take her in his arms, a yearning to pillow her head on
his shoulder and kiss away the tears, to smooth with tender caress the
wavy hair, and bury his face deep in it till he grew drunk with the
madness of her. But he knew at last for whom she really pleaded.
Roy dared not look at Helen any more, for this was the hardest moment
he had ever lived.
"You ask this for your uncle, but what of--of the other fellow? You
must know that if one goes free so will they both; they can't be
separated."
"It's almost too much to ask," the Kid took up, uncertainly. "But don't
you think the work is done? I can't help but admire McNamara, and
neither can you--he's been too good an enemy to you for
that--and--and--he loves Helen."
"I know--I know," said Glenister, hastily, at the same time stopping an
unintelligible protest from the girl. "You've said enough." He
straightened his slightly stooping shoulders and looked at the unopened
package wearily, then slipped the rubber band from it, and, separating
the contents, tore them up--one by one--tore them into fine bits
without hurry or ostentation, and tossed the fragments away, while the
woman began to sob softly, the sound of her relief alone disturbing the
silence. And so he gave her his enemy, making his offer gamely,
according to his code.
They left him standing there, the glory of the dying day illumining his
lean, brown features, the vision of a great loneliness in his weary
eyes.
He did not rouse himself till the sky before him was only a curtain of
steel, pencilled with streaks of soot that lay close down above the
darker sea. Then he sighed and said, aloud:
"So this is the end, and I gave him to her with these hands"--he held
them out before him curiously, becoming conscious for the first time
that the left one was swollen and discolored and fearfully painful. He
noted it with impersonal interest, realizing its need of medical
attention--so left the cabin and walked down into the city. He
encountered Dextry and Simms on the way, and they went with him, both
flowing with the gossip of the camp.
"Lord, but you're the talk of the town," they began. "The curio hunters
have commenced to pull Struve's office apart for souvenirs, and the
Swedes want to run you for Congress as soon as ever we get admitted as
a State. They say that at collar-an'-elbow holts you could lick any of
them Eastern senators and thereby rastle out a lot of good legislation
for us cripples up here."
"Speakin' of laws goes to show me that this here country is gettin' too
blamed civilized for a white man," said Simms, pessimistically, "and
now that this fight is ended up it don't look like there would be
anything doin' fit to claim the interest of a growed-up person for a
long while. I'm goin' west."
"West! Why, you can throw a stone into Bering Strait from here," said
Roy, smiling.
The night was bright with a full moon when they left the doctor's
office. Roy, in no mood for the exuberance of his companions, parted
from them, but had not gone far before he met Cherry Malotte. His head
was low and he did not see her till she spoke.
Her words chimed so perfectly with his thoughts that he replied: "Yes,
it's all over, little girl."
"You don't need my congratulations--you know me too well for that. How
does it feel to be a winner?"
"Lost what?"
"Everything except--I see. You mean that she--that you have asked her
and she won't?" He never knew the cost at which she held her voice so
steady.
"More than that. It's so new that it hurts yet, and it will continue to
hurt for a long time, I suppose--but to-morrow I am going back to my
hills and my valleys, back to the Midas and my work, and try to begin
all over. For a time I've wandered in strange paths, seeking new gods,
as it were, but the dazzle has died out of my eyes and I can see true
again. She isn't for me, although I shall always love her. I'm sorry I
can't forget easily, as some do. It's hard to look ahead and take an
interest in things. But what about you? Where shall you go?"
"I don't know. It doesn't really matter--now." The dusk hid her white,
set face and she spoke monotonously. "I am going to see the Bronco Kid.
He sent for me. He's ill."
"He's not a bad sort," said Roy. "And I suppose he'll make a new start,
too."
"Perhaps," said she, gazing far out over the gloomy ocean. "It all
depends." After a moment, she added, "What a pity that we can't all
sponge off the slate and begin afresh and--forget."
"It's part of the game," said he. "I don't know why it's so, but it is.
I'll see you sometimes, won't I?"
She stood straight and still as he melted into the shadows, and only
the moonlight heard her pitiful sob and her hopeless whisper:
The sand, wet, packed, and hard as a pavement, gave no sound to his
careless steps; and thus it was that he came silently upon the one
woman as she stood beside the silver surf. Had he seen her first he
would have slunk past in the landward shadows; but, recognizing his
tall form, she called and he came, while it seemed that his lungs grew
suddenly constricted, as though bound about with steel hoops. The very
pleasure of her sight pained him. He advanced eagerly, and yet with
hesitation, standing stiffly aloof while his heart fluttered and his
tongue grew dumb. At last she saw his bandages and her manner changed
abruptly. Coming closer she touched them with caressing fingers.
He had supposed she would go to-morrow with her uncle and--the other,
to be with them through their travail.
With warm impetuosity she began: "It was a noble thing you did to-day.
Oh, I am glad and proud."
"I prefer you to think of me in that way, rather than as the wild beast
you saw this morning, for I was mad, perfectly mad with hatred and
revenge, and every wild impulse that comes to a defeated man. You see,
I had played and lost, played and lost, again and again, till there was
nothing left. What mischance brought you there? It was a terribly
brutal thing, but you can't understand."
"But I can understand. I do. I know all about it now. I know the wild
rage of desperation; I know the exultation of victory; I know what hate
and fear are now. You told me once that the wilderness had made you a
savage, and I laughed at it just as I did when you said that my contact
with big things would teach me the truth, that we're all alike, and
that those motives are in us all. I see now that you were right and I
was very simple. I learned a great deal last night."
"I have learned much also," said he. "I wish you might teach me more."
He moved as though to speak, but held back and tore his eyes away from
her.
"Once, a long time ago, I read a Lover's Petition, and ever since
knowing you I have made the constant prayer that I might be given the
purity to be worthy the good in you, and that you might be granted the
patience to reach the good in me--but it's no use. But at least I'm
glad we have met on common ground, as it were, and that you understand,
in a measure. The prayer could not be answered; but through it I have
found myself and--I have known you. That last is worth more than a
king's ransom to me. It is a holy thing which I shall reverence always,
and when you go you will leave me lonely except for its remembrance."
Something in her voice swept his gaze back from the shimmering causeway
that rippled seaward to the rising moon. It brought the breath into his
throat, and he shook as though seized by a great fear.
"Unless--what?"
"Oh, God! don't play with me!" He flung out his hand as though to stop
her while his voice died out to a supplicating hoarseness. "I can't
stand that."
"Don't you see? Won't you see?" she asked. "I was waiting here for the
courage to go to you since you have made it so very hard for me--my
pagan." With which she came close to him, looking upward into his face,
smiling a little, shrinking a little, yielding yet withholding, while
the moonlight made of her eyes two bottomless, boundless pools, dark
with love, and brimming with the promise of his dreams.
THE END
Updated editions will replace the previous one—the old editions will
be renamed.
Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
States without permission and without paying copyright
royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
Gutenberg™ electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG™
concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away—you may
do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
license, especially commercial redistribution.
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
at www.gutenberg.org. If you
are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg™ work in a format
other than “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official
version posted on the official Project Gutenberg™ website
(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original “Plain
Vanilla ASCII” or other form. Any alternate format must include the
full Project Gutenberg™ License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
• You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
the use of Project Gutenberg™ works calculated using the method
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
to the owner of the Project Gutenberg™ trademark, but he has
agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
Section 4, “Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation.”
• You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg™
License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg™
works.
• You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
distribution of Project Gutenberg™ works.
1.F.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’, WITH NO
OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg™ electronic works in
accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg™
electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
or any Project Gutenberg™ work, (b) alteration, modification, or
additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg™ work, and (c) any
Defect you cause.
Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate.
Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
facility: www.gutenberg.org.